LEVITICUS 26: ITS
RELATIONSHIP TO
COVENANT CONTEXTS AND
CONCEPTS
by
William D.
Barrick
Submitted in partial fulfillment of
requirements
for the degree of Doctor of Theology in
Grace Theological Seminary
May 1981
Title: LEVITICUS 26: ITS RELATIONSHIP TO COVENANT
CONTEXTS
AND CONCEPTS
Author:
William D. Barrick
Degree:
Doctor of Theology
Date: May, 1981
Adviser:
D. Wayne Knife
No other pericope of the Old Testament
possesses the affinity
which Leviticus 26 has for the Palestinian Covenant
(Deuteronomy 27-30).
The
blessings and curses contained in the two pericopes are the most
extensive in the Old Testament. Some Bible
expositors have classified
Leviticus
26 as a prophetic preview of the Palestinian Covenant. This
study tests that hypothesis. A brief consideration of
the Mosaic author-
ship of the pericope and a development of the
covenant concept in the
book of Leviticus initiates the study. The exegesis
commences with a
text-critical analysis which supports
the reliability of the Massoretic
Text
and demonstrates the unreliability of the textual apparatuses of
Biblia Hebraica (Kittel) and Biblia Hebraica Stuttgartensia. The verse
by verse treatment of the interpretation of the
pericope directs atten-
tion to the grammatical, contextual, and literary
elements. A compara-
tive analysis of Leviticus 26 and similar
extra-biblical materials (the
Esarhaddon
vassal treaties and the Sefire inscriptions) supplements the
exegesis. The writer concludes the study by
systematically summarizing
the key doctrines of Leviticus 26.
Leviticus 26 is parenetic revelation
written in an elevated lit-
erary style. It was granted at Sinai on the
threshhold of
wilderness
wanderings. The promulgation of the Mosaic Covenant had
caused
an apparent tension with the Abrahamic Covenant. After three
disturbing
apostasies at Sinai, Leviticus 26 was revealed to explain
the
relationship between the two covenants and to reemphasize the exclu-
sive
lordship of Yahweh. The Mosaic Covenant did not nullify the prom-
ises
of the Abrahamic Covenant. This message in Leviticus 26 antedated
Paul's
in Galatians 3:17 by fifteen centuries. The Mosaic legislation
emphasized
the recipients of the land promised to Abraham. The bless-
ings
and curses of the pericope are developed with both covenants and
their
respective emphases in mind. Loyalty to Yahweh would initiate
blessings.
These are described in terms of the landedness promised by
the
Abrahamic Covenant. Disloyalty would initiate cursing. This is
described
as a five-stage process of Mosaic Covenant vengeance with the
exile
as the ultimate chastisement. The purpose of cursing was to pro-
duce
confession of guilt, humility, and restitution. The sabbatical
principle
is deeply involved in the restitution. Circumcision was the
seal
of the Abrahamic Covenant, but the sabbaths were the seal of the
Mosaic.
The sabbatical principle is central to Leviticus 26. Yahweh is
both
the lord of space (the land) and time (the sabbaths). The land-
giver
and exodus-causer will always be loyal to his covenants. The peri-
cope
anticipates but does not reveal the Palestinian Covenant per se.
The extra-biblical treaties were
composed seven centuries after
Leviticus
26. Leviticus 26, the Esarhaddon vassal treaties, and the Sefire
inscriptions
were independently written. A mutual stream of covenant mate-
rials
may have influenced the, but each possesses its own distinctions.
Accepted by the Faculty of Grace
Theological Seminary
in partial fulfillment of requirements for the degree
Doctor of Theology
D.
Adviser
John J. Davis
Adviser
James E. Eisenbraun
Adviser
Copyright © 1981 by William D. Barrick
Digitally prepared and posted on the web by
Ted Hildebrandt (2004)
with permission.
Please report any errors to:
ACKNOWLEDGMENTS
The writer expresses his thanks to those who have
contributed
their efforts toward the
completion of this dissertation. During the
writing, the writer was engaged
in missionary deputation as preparation
for participation in the Old
Testament Translation Project of the Bengali
Common Language Bible in
committee exercised patience
and good faith while the writer was travel-
ing. Their Christian grace,
coupled with their desire for academic
excellence, has been an
inspiration.
While on deputation in
exclusive use of the office and
typewriter of a close friend, Pastor
Jim Parker. Jim's encouragement
by word and by supplying space, equip-
ment, and books, will never be
forgotten. He and his wife,
examples of true Christian
hospitality.
Last, but certainly not least, the writer expresses his
deepest
gratitude to his wife, Barbara,
who has patiently endured to the end
the years of doctoral education
and dissertation production. In the
midst of preparing the family
for departure to
neglect to encourage her
husband in his writing. Her prudence and grace
are precious. dvbk
jmtt NH-twx . . . tklWm hwx hvhym
"a wife
possessing good sense/prudence
is from Yahweh . . . a gracious woman
attains honor" (Prov 19:14; 11:16).
vi
TABLE OF CONTENTS
LIST
OF ABBREVIATIONS . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . xiii
Chapter
I.
Introduction . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 1
Preliminary
Statements . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . 3
Statement of
Purpose . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . 3
Statement of
Pertinence . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 5
Statement of
Procedure . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . 12
Text-critical analysis . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 13
Exegetical analysis . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
17
Comparative analysis with extra-biblical
treaties 17
Systematic theological synthesis . . . . . .
. . . . . . . 19
General
Introduction to Leviticus 26 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 20
Date and Authorship
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
20
Contextual Considerations . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 21
II. A TEXT-CRITICAL ANALYSIS OF
LEVITICUS 26 . . . . . 23
Verse
2 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 23
Verse
9 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 24
Verse 11 . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 24
Verse 16 . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 25
Verse
17 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 26
Verse 20 . .
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 28
Verse 24
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 29
viii
ix
Verse
31 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 30
Verses
34 and 35 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
31
Verse
39 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . 32
Verse
41 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . 35
Verse
42 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . 38
Verse
43 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . 39
Verse
44 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . 39
Verse
46 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 41
Summary . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 41
III. AN EXEGETICAL ANALYSIS OF
LEVITICUS 26 . . . . . . . . 44
Precept
(vv. 1-2) . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 45
Prohibition of Idols (v. 1) . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 45
Preservation of Sabbaths and Sanctuary (v.
2) . . . . . . . . . . 47
The
sabbath observance (v. 2a). . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 48
The
sanctuary reverence (v. 2b) . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 49
Promise
(vv. 3-13) . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 50
The Prerequisite: Obedience (v. 3) . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . 50
The Product: Blessing (vv. 4-12) . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 54
Productivity
(vv. 4-5) . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 56
Peace
(v. 6) . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 59
Power
(vv. 7-8) . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 62
Population
(v. 9) . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . . 65
Provision
(v. 10) . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . . . 69
Presence
(vv. 11-12) . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . . 71
The Premise:
Yahweh's Salvation (v. 13) . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . 79
The Summary of Verses 3-13 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
81
Form
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
81
x
Aim . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . . . 82
Penalty
(vv. 14-45) . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 85
The Cause: Disobedience (vv. 14-15) . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 85
The Consequence: Retribution (vv.
16-38) . . . . . . . . . . 90
Debilitation
and defeat (vv. 16-17) . . . . . . . . .
. . . 90
Drought
(vv. 18-20) . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
97
Devastation
by wild beasts (vv. 21-22) . . . . . . .
. . 102
Deprivation
by siege (vv. 23-26) . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . 105
Deportation
(vv. 27-38) . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . 113
Introduction (vv. 27-28) . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . 114
Dehumanization (cannibalism) (v. 29) . . . .
. . . . . 116
Desolation (vv. 30-32) . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 118
Dispersion (exile) (v. 33) . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . 126
Desertion of the land (vv. 34-38) . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . 129
The
Sabbath rest (vv. 34-35) . . . . . . . .
. . . . . 129
The
stricken remnant (vv. 36-38) . . . . . . . . . . 134
The
Contingency: Repentance (vv. 39-45) . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 141
Repentance:
(vv.
39-41) . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 142
Remembrance: Yahweh's acceptance of repentance
(v.
42) . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 150
Repetition: A summary concerning retribution
(v.
43) . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 152
Reaffirmation: Yahweh's promise to the
exiles
(vv.
44-45) . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 156
The
Summary of verses 14-45 . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 160
Form . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 160
Aim . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 162
Postscript
(v. 46) . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 166
xi
IV. A COMPARATIVE ANALYSIS OF LEVITICUS
26, ESARHADDON’S
TREATIES, AND THE SEFIRE INSCRIPTIONS . . . . . . . . . . . 171
Dating
the Documents . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 171
Dependence
in the Documents . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 174
The Esarhaddon Vassal Treaties . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . 175
Comparison
with Leviticus 26 . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . 176
The Sefrre Inscriptions . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . 180
Comparison
with Leviticus 26 . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . 181
Conclusions
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . 184
V. SYSTEMATIC SYNTHESIS OF THE THEOLOGICAL
CONCEPTS
OF
LEVITICUS 26 . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 185
Covenant . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 185
Abrahamic Covenant . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . 186
Sinaitic Covenant . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . 188
Palestinian Covenant . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . 190
Land
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . 191
Heilsgeschicht . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 193
Breach and Preservation of Covenant . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 194
Law . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 195
Relation to Covenant . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . 196
Prohibition of Idolatry . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . 196
Observance of Sabbaths . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . 198
Yahweh . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 199
Selbstvorstellungsformel
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . 200
Relation to Covenant . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . 201
Presence and Sanctuary . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . 202
Promise . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 202
Blessing and Curse . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . . 202
xii
Obedience
and Disobedience . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . 203
Guilt
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 204
Retribution
and Chastisement . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . 205
Exile . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 206
Repentance
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . 207
Restitution . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . 207
Revelation .
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
208
Leviticus
26 and the New Testament . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . 209
VI. CONCLUSION . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 211
BIBLIOGRAPHY . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 214
LIST
OF ABBREVIATIONS
AB Anchor Bible
Afo Archiv fur Orientforschung
AnBib Analecta Biblica
AnOr Analecta Orientalia
AOAT Alter Orient and Altes Testament
ASV American Standard Version (1901)
BAG W. Bauer, W. F. Arndt, and F. W. Gingrich, Greek-English
Lexicon of the New Testament
BDB F. Brown, S. R. Driver, and C. A. Briggs, Hebrew and English
Lexicon of the Old Testament
BDF F. Blass, A. Debrunner, and R. W. Funk, A Greek Grammar of
the New Testament
BHK R. Kittel, Biblia Hebraica, 1st edition
BHK3 R. Kittel, Biblia Hebraica, 3rd edition
BHS K. Elliger, Biblia Hebraica Stuttgartensia
Bib Biblica
BibOr Biblica et Orientalia
CBC
CBQ Catholic Biblical Quarterly
CSCO Corpus Scriptorum Christianorum Orientalium
EJ Encyclopaedia Judaica
GAG W. von Soden, Grundriss der akkadischen Grammatik
GKC Gesenius-Kautzsch-Cowley, Gesenius' Hebrew Grammar
HAT Handbuch zum Alten Testament
xiii
xiv
ICC International Critical Commentary
IDB G. A. Buttrick (ed.), Interpreter's Dictionary of the Bible
JBL Journal of Biblical Literature
JNES Journal of Near Eastern Studies
JNSL Journal of Northwest Semitic
Languages
JSS Journal of Semitic Studies
JTS Journal of Theological Studies
KAI H. Donner and W. Rollig, Kanaanaische und aramaische Inschriften
KB L. Koehler and W. Baumgartner, Lexicon in Veteris Testament
Libros
LSJ Liddell-Scott-Jones, Greek-English Lexicon
MT Massoretic Text
NASB New American Standard Bible
NICOT New International Commentary on the Old Testament
NIV New International Version
n.s. new series
OTL Old Testament Library
OTS Oudtestamentische Studien
SBLDS Society of Biblical Literature Dissertation Series
STDJ Studies on the Texts of the
s.v. sub verbo "under the word"; sub voce
"under the title"
TDNT G. Kittel and G. Friedrich (eds.),
Theological Dictionary of
the New Testament
TDOT G. J. Botterweck and H. Ringgren
(eds.), Theological Dictionary
of the Old Testament
THAT E. Jenni and C. Westermann (eds.),
Theologisches Handworter-
buch zum Alten Testament
UT C. H. Gordon, Ugaritic Textbook
VT Vetus Testamentum
xv
VTSUP Supplements to Vetus Testamentum
WMANT Wissenschaftliche Monographien zum Alten and Neuen Testament
WTJ
ZAW
Zeitschrift fur die
alttestamentliche Wissenschaft
For the
CD
1QH Hodayot
(Thanksgiving Hymns) from
1QM Milhamah
(War Scroll) from
11QLev Leviticus from
CHAPTER
I
INTRODUCTION
Jewish
children once commenced their biblical studies with the
book of Leviticus.1
Today, however, the book has been neglected by the
church. Few commentaries are
available to the serious student, and few
of those make any concerted
effort to exegete the book verse by verse.
The student of Leviticus will find
much of the book uninterpreted in
even the best of commentaries
and will be required to strike out on his
own if he is to uncover its
riches. Wenham's well-written commentary2
should renew interest in the
book of Leviticus because of its clear
presentation, bold approach to
key subjects (e.g., the clean-unclean
and holy-profane categories3),
and integration with New Testament
truths.4
Unfortunately, it also suffers occasionally from exegetical
malnutrition. A case in point
is the treatment of Leviticus 26.5
Leviticus 26 has consistently
been the threefold victim of
neglect: (1) It has been
avoided in the synagogue because of its
1 Bernard J. Bamberger, Leviticus, vol. 3 of The Torah: A Modern
Commentary, 5 vols. (
1979),
p. xix.
2 Gordon J. Wenham, The Book of Leviticus, NICOT (
Wm.
B. Eerdmans Publishing Co., 1979).
3 Ibid., pp. 18-25.
4 Each chapter concludes with a discussion
of its relationship
to
the New Testament and Christianity.
5 Ibid., pp. 324-34.
1
2
unpleasant subject matter.1
(2) It has been treated sketchily in the
commentaries (past and present,
Jewish and Christian). (3) Its covenant
affinities are rarely discussed
even in materials dedicated to the con-
cept of covenant in the Old
Testament. However, there are references
to the chapter occasionally,
and some of these demonstrate an awareness
of the chapter's significance
for covenantal studies. Delbert Hillers,
for example, places Leviticus 26
on a par with Deuteronomy 28:
In the first place, the prophets did employ much
traditional mate-
rial in composing their threats of doom. This is
not a new idea by
any means, but it is worth pointing out that the
parallels gathered
here fully support it. Secondly, this inherited
material in the
prophets is related to the Israelite tradition
of curses as pre-
served in Deut 28 and Lev 26. Thirdly, these
Israelite maledictions
resemble, at many points, curses from Akkadian
and Aramaic treaties.
None of the parallels looks like simple copying,
but the possibility
of influence of treaty-curses on Israelite
literature, or of mutual
influence, or of dependence on common sources,
cannot be disregarded.
After all, we possess only a relatively small
body of treaty-curses,
and of these only a portion are useful for
comparative purposes; in
view of this the number of parallels to
expressions in the prophets
is impressive.2
The significance of Leviticus
26, therefore, may be viewed from several
perspectives: (1) its
relationship to Deuteronomy 28, (2) its relation-
ship to the Old Testament
prophets and their revelations, and (3) its
relationship to the treaties of
the ancient Near East.
The
abundance of similarities between Leviticus 26 and Deuter-
onomy 26-28 serves to catapult
the former pericope into the same sphere
of significance as the latter.
Meredith Kline tantalizingly suggests
that the curses of Deuteronomy
28 were "anticipated in the promises and
1 Bamberger, Leviticus, p. 290.
2 Delbert R. Hillers, Treaty-Curses and the Old Testament Proph-
ets, BibOr 16 (Rome:
Pontifical Biblical Institute, 1964), p. 78.
3
threats of a similar section in
Leviticus (chap. 26)."l The exact
nature of this anticipation
needs definition--especially as it relates
to the concepts of prophetic
revelation and progressive revelation.
With
this brief introduction to the significance of Leviticus
26 in mind, the following
preliminary statements are presented in order
to map out the purpose and
procedure of this study.
Preliminary Statements
Statement of Purpose
This
dissertation is committed to the testing of the following
thesis: Leviticus 26 is a
prophetic preview of the Palestinian Cove-
nant. In order to facilitate
the treatment of the thesis, the follow-
ing working definitions are
offered:
Prophecy
is the message of God which he has revealed directly
to his chosen spokesman. Thus, prophecy is
divine revelation above
all else. Prophecy is not being used here in
the narrow sense of
prediction nor in the strictest
form-critical category totally dis-
tinct from narrative, law, psalms, and
wisdom. The means and form
of prophecy may differ radically from
prophet to prophet. The time
scheme of prophecy may be past, present, or
future--at times even
overlapping these three frames of reference.2
1 Meredith G. Kline, Treaty of the Great King: The Covenant
Structure of
Deuteronomy: Studies and Commentary (
B.
Eerdmans Publishing Co., 1972), p. 124.
2 There is such a wide range of acceptance
of this definition
and
its factors that it would not serve the purpose of this study to
present
the biblical bases for the definition. The reader is referred
to
the following sources for the detailed treatment of the definition
and
its bases: Richard N. Soulen, Handbook of
Biblical Criticism
(Atlanta:
John Knox Press, 1976), pp. 129-33; Edward J. Young, My
Servants the Prophets (
4
A
preview is "a statement giving advance information: FORE-
TASTE, GLIMPSE."1 The verb
may have the meaning "to give an overall
presentation of (a subject of study) before
beginning systematic
instruction."2
The
Palestinian Covenant is the pact God established with
was entered by
by sacrifice and public deposit at Shechem
(Josh 8:30-35), and
renewed by common consent at Shechem near
the end of Joshua's
ministry (24:1-28). Synonyms for Palestinian
Covenant include
Deuteronomic Covenant and Covenant of the
Plains of Moab.3
As this
study progresses the problems of contexts must be
treated. These include: (1) the
general context of the treaty forms
of the ancient Near East; (2)
the historical-theological context of
both the Abrahamic and Sinaitic
covenants; and, (3) the prophetic-
theological context of the
Palestinian Covenant. The first of these
contexts will be developed in
Chapter IV ("A Comparative Analysis of
1952),
pp. 56-75; J. Barton Payne, Encyclopedia
of Biblical Prophecy
(New
York: Harper & Row, Publishers, 1973), pp. 3-9;
man,
An Introduction to the Old Testament
Prophets (
Press,
1968), pp. 37-40; Otto Eissfeldt, The Old
Testament: An Intro-
duction, trans. Peter R.
Ackroyd (
1965),
pp. 76-81.
1 Philip Babcock Gove, ed., Webster's Third New International
Dictionary of the
English Language.
Unabridged (
C.
Merriam Co., Publishers, 1976),--p. 1798.
2 Ibid.
3 Cf. Charles
Faith (Neptune, NJ: Loizeaux
Brothers, 1953), pp. 58-59; Eissfeldt,
The Old Testament, pp. 214-17, 226, 230;
S. R. Driver, An Introduction
to the Literature of the
Old Testament
(
1956),
p. 71; TDOT, s.v. "tyriB;," by M. Weinfeld,
2:256, 268-69; Moshe
Weinfeld,
Deuteronomy and the Deuteronomic School
(
Press,
1972), pp. 59-116; Delbert R. Hillers, Covenant:
The History
5
Leviticus 26, Esarhaddon's
Treaties, and the Sefire Inscriptions").
The second and third contexts
will be treated as they are encountered
during the exegesis of
Leviticus 26 in Chapter III ("An Exegetical
Analysis of Leviticus 26")
and in the discussion of the theological
emphases of the pericope in
Chapter IV ("A Systematic Synthesis of
the Theological Concepts of
Leviticus 26").
Statement
of Pertinence
The
subject of the significance of Leviticus 26 has already
been introduced in the first
section of this chapter.1 The relation-
ship of the pericope to
Deuteronomy 27-30 is indicative of the position
it should be granted in
biblical studies. The very fact that Leviticus
26 and Deuteronomy 28 both
contain covenant blessings and curses sets
the two pericopes apart from
the rest of the Old Testament--not because
they are the only such
materials, but because they are the most exten-
sive.2 Since there
is nearly a universal consensus that Leviticus 26
of a Biblical Idea (Baltimore: Johns
Hopkins University Press, 1969),
pp.
58-64, 134-42.
1 See above, pp. 1-3.
2 "In ausgefuhrter Form belegt ist
sie einzig in Dt. 28 and Lev.
26,
nur angedeutet ist sie in Texten, die von diesen beiden Kapiteln
traditionsgeschichtlich
abhangig sind oder in engem Zusammenhang mit
ihnen
stehen." Jorg Jeremias, Kultprophetie
and Gerichsverkundigung in
der spaten Konigszeit
Verlag,
1970), p. 165. (Translation: "In an elaborate form it occurs
solely
in Dt. 28 and Lev. 26, yet it is implied in those texts which
are
traditio-historically dependent on both of these chapters or stand
in
close relationship to them.") Cf. Deut 11:8-17, 26-29; 27:11-26;
30:15-20;
Josh 8:33-34; 1 Kgs 8:31-53; Dan 9:11; Hag 1:5-11; Amos
4:6-13.
See the chart of parallels between Amos 4, Leviticus 26, Deuter-
onomy
28, and 1 Kings 8 in Hans Walter Wolff, Joel
and Amos, trans.
Waldemar
Janzen, et al., ed. S. Dean McBride,
Jr., in Hermeneia, ed.
Frank
Moore Cross, Jr., et al.
(Philadelphia: Fortress Press, 1977),
p.
213.
6
is closely related to
Deuteronomy 28, it must have some bearing on the
Deuteronomic Covenant in the
latter passage and its immediate context.
This covenant is not a minor
statement of Yahweh's relationship to
Indeed it seems that isolated writers of this
school added yet
another covenant in the
series, so that 'the whole structure of the
religious relationship
now rested on these three covenants as on three
massive pillars'.
At any rate, Deut. 26.17-19; 28.69; 29.8, 11,
13, 20 point in this
direction.1
Since the Deuteronomic (or,
Palestinian) Covenant is of such major
import, Leviticus 26 must, by
its close association with it, be con-
sidered a significant piece of
literature in the Old Testament's dis-
closure of the relationship of
Yahweh to his people,
covenants made with Abraham and
Moses are not to be ignored in old
Testament theology, the
covenant in
ought not to be ignored.
A
caution should be issued regarding the subject of covenant:
"the covenant does not
explain everything about early
relationship of Leviticus 26 to
covenant is inherent to the pericope:
the Abrahamic Covenant is
specified in verse 42 and the Mosaic (or,
Sinaitic) Covenant is
identified in verses 13-15. Verse 9 ("I will
ratify my covenant with
you") provides the exegete with the problem of
identifying the covenant:
Abrahamic? Mosaic? or, Palestinian? The
1 Walther Eichrodt, Theology of the Old Testament, 2 vols., trans.
J.
A. Baker, OTL (Philadelphia: Westminster Press, 1961), 1:53; with
quote
from Richard Kraetzschmar, Die
Bundesvorstellung im Alten Testa-
ment in ihrer
geschichtlichen Entwicklung (
2 Hillers, Covenant, p. 87.
7
impact on this pericope of
covenant concepts and covenant relationships,
therefore, is evident. It is
also quite true that the materials and
concepts of covenant provide
one of the most important aspects of Yah-
weh's relationship to Israel.1
It behooves the student, however, to
walk with care in this area and
to seek relevance rather than to create
it.2 The thrust of
this study is in that direction: to seek the con-
cept and context of covenant in
Leviticus 26. If that relationship is
discovered, it will then be
tested and proof given in detail to sub-
stantiate it.
It is with
regard to covenant relationships in this pericope
that the possibility of
prophetic anticipation must be investigated.
The idea is not novel. R. A.
Barclay3 and H. G. Reventlow4 view Levi-
ticus 26 as prophetic. Such an
identification of the material in this
pericope would not be
inconsistent with Mosaic authorship since Moses
was consistently presented as a
prophet by the Old Testament.5
The
book of Leviticus is arranged in a fashion conducive to the
view that Leviticus 26 is in a
covenant context. Chapters 1-7 present
1 R. E. Clements, Prophecy and Tradition, in Growing Points in
Theology (Atlanta: John Knox
Press, 1975), pp. 8, 15.
2 Ronald E. Clements, God's
pretation of the Book of
Deuteronomy
(Valley Forge: Judson Press, 1969),
p.
28.
3 R. A. Barclay, The Law Givers: Leviticus and Deuteronomy, vol.
3
in Bible Guides, ed. William Barclay and F. F. Bruce (
don
Press, 1964), p. 49.
4 Henning Graf Reventlow, "Die Volker
als Jahwes Zeugen bei
Ezechiel,"
ZAW 71 (1959):40.
5 Cf. Hillers, Covenant, p. 141. Cf. Deut 34:10, "There has not
arisen
again in
face."
8
the sacrificial system which
provided for an outward manifestation of
the covenant relationship
individually and nationally. The sacrifices
were to be offered by covenant
members only.1 The sacrifices did not
provide forgiveness for breach
of covenant (i.e., they did not provide
forgiveness for sins or deliver
from the consequences of sin). The
chief object of the sacrificial
system was an exhibition of fellowship
with the God of the covenant
and with the people of the covenant—
continued covenantal communion.2
Chapters
8-10 reveal the ministry of the priesthood. These
priests were the caretakers of
the covenant relationship--especially
as it was to be continually
manifested (even on a daily basis) in the
sacrificial system.
Unfaithfulness to the strict stipulations of this
covenant ministry brought the
death penalty to Nadab and Abihu (10:1-20).
Chapters
11-15 deal with the purity of life which Yahweh required
of
nize their identification with
him. They were not to identify with any
of the deities of the
surrounding peoples. By diet, by birth, by
treatment of
"leprosy," and by personal hygiene, the covenant community
was to be distinct from its
neighbors.
Chapter
16 brings the covenant relationship to the calendar of
nant renewal ceremonies. The
tone of that day was one of Yahweh's sov-
ereign rule over
continued covenantal communion.
1 Cf. Lev 1:2-3; 2:1; 17:8; 22:18, 25.
This covenant community
comprised
of both native Israelites and proselytes.
2 Cf. Exod 29:42-43; Ps 50:16.
9
was ordained in order to bring
every thought into conformity with Yah-
weh's authority. The divine
suzerain blessed his covenanted people by
granting them his continued
presence (a token of his protection) among
them (v. 16; cf. vv. 1-2).
Chapters
17-24 prescribe in detail the ordinances by which the
covenant community was bound.
This legislation affected the diet, the
social relationships, the
religious leadership, the calendar, the center
of covenant worship, and the
abuse of the covenant relationship. The
calendar (chapter 23) focused
on the seventh month with its three major
observances (vv. 23-43). The
New Year celebration (the Feast of Trum-
pets, vv. 23-25) had overtones
of kingship and kingdom.1 It was a
time when the sabbatical
principle was operative (cf. seventh day,
seventh month, seventh year,
and seventh seventh year observances). It
was a time for the covenant
community to recognize formally the suze-
rainty of Yahweh. Chapter 24
presents ordinances pertaining to the
tabernacle (the dwelling place
of the visible presence of Yahweh, vv.
1-9) and pertaining to
retribution for blasphemy (vv. 10-23). Blasphemy
is further emphasized by way of
illustration (vv. 10-12, 23). Blasphemy,
in this context, is best
understood as the appropriation of the divine
name in the issuing of a curse
without Yahweh's sanction.2 Such an
appropriation was a treasonous
usurpation of covenant authority. This
1 For arguments against connecting the Old
Testament New Year
festival
to an enthronement festival, cf. Roland de Vaux, Ancient
See,
also, Norman H. Snaith, The Jewish New
Year Festival: Its Origin
and Development (
1947).
2 Cf. Wenham, Leviticus, p. 311.
10
record is followed closely by
expanded sabbatical legislation (chapter
25) and the formal blessings
and curses of the covenant (chapter 26).
All of the ordinances (chapters
17-24) involve the covenant at
(the Mosaic Covenant).
It
appears that the overall design of the book of Leviticus
may have been influenced by
covenant concepts.1 The following summary
of chapters 1-24 reflects this
conclusion:
(1)
Provision for the continued observance of the ratification
sacrifices and meals (chapters 1-7).
(2)
Provision for the continued publication of the covenant
deposit and the delegation of
responsibility to representatives of
the suzerain (chapters 8-10).
(3)
General stipulations for maintaining the covenant identity
(chapters 11-15).
(4)
Provision for the annual renewal of the covenant (chapter 16).
(5)
Specific stipulations for maintaining the covenant identity
(chapters 17-24) .
Chapters
25 and 26 enter at this point to bring the Sinaitic
Covenant to a conclusion. This
is accomplished by emphasizing the mono-
theistic and sabbatical
principles which are the ultimate cornerstones
of the covenant (cf. 25:55-26:3
and Exod 20:2-11). It is not surprising
to find chapter 26 as the
closing of Leviticus. Blessings and cursings
l The two terms in this statement are emphasized
in order to dis-
tinguish
this concept from the concept that Leviticus was patterned
after
covenant or treaty forms. Cf. Hillers, Covenant,
pp. 29-38.
11
usually concluded the treaties
of the ancient Near East.1
Chapter
27 forms an appendix to the book. It is positioned
logically after the pericope
regarding blessings and curses. Yahweh's
vows and promises (chapter 26)
provide the perfect exemplar for human
vows and promises (chapter 27).2
Having
viewed Leviticus 26 in its greater context (that of the
entire book), it is possible to
understand the covenant significance
of the pericope as well as its
vital contribution to the development
of the book. Leviticus 26 may
be interpreted more accurately with a
proper understanding of the
purpose and argument of the book as a whole.
Recent
developments in "exile theology"3 have brought even
greater significance to this
pericope. This area of study involves the
exilic prophets' dependence
upon Leviticus 26 for some of their covenant
materials. "Exile
theology" treats the pericope as prophetic.4 The
motifs of judgment and
deliverance are emphasized in the old Testament
concept of exile. The exile was
to become more than a punitive factor
in
other their faith (i.e., a
rehabilitating factor).5
1 Cf. Dennis J. McCarthy, Treaty and Covenant: A Study in Form
in the Ancient Oriental
Documents and in the Old Testament, AnBib 21A
(Rome:
Biblical Institute Press, 1978), pp. 172-87.
2 Wenham, Leviticus, p. 336.
3 E.g.: Thomas M. Raitt, A Theology of Exile: Judgment/Deliver-
ance in Jeremiah and
Ezekiel
(Philadelphia: Fortress Press, 1977);
Ralph
W.
delphia:
Fortress Press, 1979). The relationship of Leviticus 26 to
the
exile by way of the subject matter of the pericope does not auto-
matically
place its composition in the time of the exile. This matter
of
date will be discussed at a later point in this study.
4 Raitt, A Theology of Exile, pp. 25-29, 240 n. 36.
5 Klein,
12
The
concept of exile is connected closely with the sabbatical
principle. This is implied by 2
Chronicles 36:21,
so that the word of Yahweh through Jeremiah
might be fulfilled
until the land enjoyed the restitution of1
its sabbaths. All
the days of its devastation it rested so that
seventy years might
be fulfilled.
This reference is commonly
accepted as being dependent upon Leviticus
26:34,
Then the land shall enjoy the restitution of its
sabbaths all the
days of its devastation while you are in the
land of your enemies.
Then the land shall rest; yea, it shall enjoy
the restitution of
its sabbaths.
The sabbatical principle's
relationship to the land, the exile, and the
nation of
a significant pericope.2
The observance of the sabbatical principle
(both weekly and annually)
brought the promise of blessing (cf. Lev
25:18-21). The failure to
observe the principle brought the threat of
cursing, indeed, the ultimate
of curses: physical death (cf. Exod
31:13-17). Leviticus 26 closely
connects the sabbatical principle and
the blessings and curses of the
covenant. This is consistent with the
accentuation of these same
aspects elsewhere in the Old Testament cove-
nant materials.
Statement
of Procedure
The
procedure adopted in this study reflects the writer's con-
victions with regard to
exegetical methodology. The following steps
outline the procedure:
1 The italics in the biblical quotation
represent words added to
clarify
meaning.
2 Cf. Niels-Erik A. Andreasen, The Old Testament Sabbath: A
Tradition-Historical
Investigation,
SBLDS 7 (
of
Biblical Literature, 1972), pp. 80-81, 203-54.
13
(1) A
text-critical study of Leviticus 26 will be presented
first in order to establish the
text--the foundation of all exegesis.
(2) An
interpretive study of the pericope will follow in order
to exegete the established
text.
(3) A
comparative study of Leviticus 26 with key treaties of
the ancient Near East (namely,
Esarhaddon's treaties and the Sefire
inscriptions) will be pursued
in order to evaluate influence.
(4) A
conceptual-theological analysis of the pericope will be
presented finally in order to
systematize the doctrinal contribu-
tions to Old Testament
theology.
Text-critical analysis
There
are two different approaches to be considered with regard
to the study of the text of the
Old Testament. These approaches involve
both the establishment and the
interpretation of the text:1
(1) The
textual methodology emphasizes the graphic transmission
of the text and
characteristically opts to emend the Massoretic
Text (sometimes by conjecture)
rather than to await philological
or linguistic elucidation.
(2) The
philological methodology emphasizes the semantic trans-
mission of the text and
characteristically opts for cognate eluci-
dation.
The
first of these methodologies seems to dominate the majority
of commentaries on Leviticus.
Kittel's Biblia Hebraica2
is the leading
1 Thomas A. Nicholas, "The Current
Quest for the Meaning of the
Text
of the Old Testament," WTJ 34
(1972):120.
2 BHK3.
14
edition of the Hebrew Old Testament
exhibiting this text-critical
philosophy. Although
conjectural emendation has not maintained its
domination in Old Testament
text-critical study,1 it continues to be
an influential viewpoint and
practice. In the strictest sense, con-
jectural emendation is "a
reading for which no authority can be found
in any text-tradition, direct
or indirect, known to us up to the
present time."2
The ultimate thrust of conjecturalism3 is the text's
supposed state of imperfection
and its resultant lack of authority.4
This philosophy is humanistic
and wrongly denies the text its prima-
facie status.5
Conjecture with reference to the autographa should have
no place in "text
criticism in sensu stricto."6
However, such an evalu-
ation of the emendatory
approach to the text of the Old Testament should
1 David Noel Freedman,
"Prolegomenon," in The Forms of
Hebrew
Poetry, George Buchanan Gray
(reprint ed.,
House,
1972), p. xxiii; Sidney Jellicoe, The
Septuagint and Modern
Study (reprint ed.,
2 Jellicoe, The Septuagint and Modern Study, p. 20 (with regard
to
the viewpoint of Joseph Ziegler).
3 Conjecturalism is not limited to textual
criticism. It is also
exhibited
in the exegetical practice of many commentators who conjectur-
alize
interpretations on the flimsiest of grounds. See, M. H. Goshen-
Gottstein,
"The History of the Bible-Text and Comparative Semitics--A
Methodological
Problem," VT 7 (1957):198.
4 Cf. James Barr, Comparative Philology and the Text of the Old
Testament (Oxford: Clarendon
Press, 1968), p. 68; Bertil Albrektson,
"Reflections
on the Emergence of a Standard Text of the Hebrew Bible,"
VTSup
29 (Leiden: E. J. Brill, 1978), pp. 62-63; James A. Sanders,
"Text
and Canon: Concepts and Method," JBL
98 (1979):19-20, 24-26.
5 See Robert Dick Wilson, A Scientific Investigation of the Old
Testament, rev. Edward J. Young
(Chicago: Moody Press, 1959), pp. 82-
83.
6 Sanders, "Text and Canon," p.
12.
15
not be taken to such an extreme
that the beneficial effects of the
While deploring the mutilating effects on the
text of their labors,
we may agree that scholars so inspired stimulate
response and
reaction, and in their way they contribute to
progress in the
field.2
The
second of these methodologies is exemplified by the contri-
butions of men like Mitchell
Dahood3 and James Barr.4 These men are
the chief representatives of
two different schools of text-critical
methodology: the
The
methodology. The
Both
methodologies have their negative and their positive
aspects. Extremism may be found
in both conjectural emendation and
philological imagination. The
external evidence involved in the
textual approach cannot be
ignored (manuscript and versional evidence).
Nor can the internal evidence
involved in the philological-linguistic
1
school
because of the relationship it had to the chief representative of
this
school, Julius Wellhausen. The title "surgical school" has also
been
employed (cf. Freedman, "Prolegomenon," p. xxii). The writer has
described
the various text-critical schools in a research paper: "Old
Testament
Textual Criticism: Its Current Trends and Tensions" (unpub-
lished
research paper, Grace Theological Seminary,
pp.
8-15.
2 Freedman, "Prolegomenon," p.
xxiii (emphasis added).
3 E.g., Mitchell Dahood, The Psalms, AB (
Doubleday
& Co., Inc., 1966-70).
4 Cf. Barr, Comparative Philology.
5 See above, n. 1.
6 Cf. G. R. Driver, review of Proverbs and Northwest Semitic
Philology, by M. Dahood, JSS 10 (1965):113-14; James Barr,
"Semitic
16
approach be ignored
(etymological, stylistic, grammatical, and semantic
evidence). All the evidence
must be considered objectively. The text
critic should employ both methodologies,
emphasizing one or the other
depending on the evidence
available for each particular textual problem.
Textual emendation must not be
ruled out dogmatically, but it should
be employed only as the last
resort. The Massoretic vocalization
should be given priority until
the evidence cannot support it.1 The
excesses of pan-Ugaritism or
any other panism should be avoided.
The
writer's approach, therefore, may be termed eclectic. In
other words, he reserves the privilege
of pursuing all pertinent avenues
of research and of considering
all forms of evidence rather than to
assume that the prima-facie
evidence of the present Massoretic Text is
unconditionally vindicated.2
The
procedure will be to consider the variants as they appear
(verse by verse), giving
greater attention to those text-critical prob-
lems which have the greater
significance to the exegetical process.
Since there are no material
variants in Leviticus 26, the discussion
will be somewhat limited. It is
not the purpose of this study to give
an exhaustive text-critical
analysis of every recurrent variant. The
evidence for each variant will
be presented in the following order:
(1) Massoretic Text, (2)
Samaritan Pentateuch, (3) Septuagint and its
Philology
and the Interpretation of the Old Testament," in Tradition
and Interpretation, ed. G. W. Anderson
(Oxford: Clarendon Press, 1979),
p.
51.
1 Cf. Nicholas, "The Current
Quest," p. 127; Barr, Comparative
Philology, pp. 35-36, 188-222.
2 Barrick, "Old Testament Textual
Criticism," pp. 25-26.
17
daughter versions, (4)
(8) Latin Vulgate, (9) Sahidic,
(10) Coptic, (11) Ethiopic, (12) Arabic,
and (12) Armenian.l
Exegetical
analysis
In the
treatment of the textual evidence some amount of inter-
pretation will have been
employed already. Ideally, however, it should
be kept to a minimum in order
to insure text-critical objectivity. The
exegesis will proceed along the
lines of a full grammatical analysis of
the established text of
Leviticus 26. Illustrative materials will be
utilized from the Old
Testament, extra-biblical documentation, and
(where pertinent) New Testament
references (e.g., Lev 26:12 and 2 Cor
6:16b). An interpretive outline
will be presented as the study pro-
ceeds.
Details
concerning fine points of grammar or grammatical dis-
putation will be relegated to
the footnotes. The writer's grammatical
opinions will be reflected in
the body of the study. The reader wish-
ing to pursue the writer's
lines of reasoning for those grammatical
opinions should find the
footnotes helpful. In an exegetical analysis
of forty-six verses there is
little room for extensive discussion or
defence of grammatical
niceties.
Comparative
analysis with extra-biblical treaties
The
choice of the Esarhaddon treaties and the Sef're inscrip-
1 Cf. James R. Battenfield, "Hebrew
Stylistic Development in
Archaic
Poetry: A Text-Critical and Exegetical Study of the Blessing
of
Jacob, Genesis 49:1-27" (unpublished doctor of theology dissertation,
Grace
Theological Seminary,
18
tions was based upon the
agreement of Weinfeld,1 Hillers,2 McCarthy,3
and Wiseman4
regarding their importance and relationship to Leviticus
26. This opinion, however, is
not held by Bamberger who declares that
this pericope "does not
present such close parallels to any known docu-
ment from the
typed language of the treaty
curses."5 In response to Weinfeld's
comparison of Leviticus 26 to
the Sefire materials, Bamberger also
says, "these similarities
appear to me slight and superficial, not like
the striking parallels between
Deuteronomy and the Assyrian treaties."6
Obviously, there is a difference
of opinion and sufficient ground for
reevaluation of the evidence.
Such a
comparative study must be based upon a proper under-
standing of the texts involved.
Therefore, this section of the study
will follow the textual and
exegetical analyses of Leviticus 26. Such
preparatory measures are
necessitated by the fact that better commen-
taries are available on
Esarhaddon's treaties and the Sefire inscrip-
tions than on Leviticus 26: The
following works will provide the base
1 Weinfeld, Deuteronomy and the Deuteronomic School, pp. 59-157.
2 Hillers, Treaty-Curses, p. 77; and, Covenant,
pp. 132-40.
3 McCarthy, Treaty and Covenant, pp. 112-15, 287.
4 D. J. Wiseman, The Vassal-Treaties of Esarhaddon (
R.
Frankena, "The Vassal-Treaties of Esarhaddon and the Dating of Deu-
teronomy,"
OTS 14 (1965):122-54; F. C. Fensham,
"Maledictions and Bene-
dictions
in Ancient Near-Eastern Vassal-Treaties and the Old Testament,"
ZAW 74 (1962):1-19.
5 Bamberger, Leviticus, p. 290.
6 Ibid., p. 338 n. 5. Cf. Clements, Prophecy and Tradition, pp.
16-17,
21.
19
from which the extra-biblical
materials will be examined: Esarhaddon--
Borger1 and Wiseman;2
Sefire--Donner and Rollig3 and Fitzmyer.4
Systematic
theological synthesis
Since
"the historical principle operating side by side with the
systematic in a complementary
role"5 is a proper description of the
methodology of Old Testament
theology, this study will present both the
diachronic and synchronic
viewpoints of the doctrinal contributions of
Leviticus 26. The synchronic
will be inherent in the choice of doc-
trinal topics or emphases from
the pericope itself (e.g., the prohibi-
tion of idolatry, the sabbath, law,
covenant, blessing, imprecation,
exile, the land, guilt, etc.).
The diachronic will be presented within
each topical discussion. Each
subject will be related to the historical
perspective (i.e., viewed with
respect to progressive revelation).
This particular section of the
dissertation will not be treated
in great detail. The purpose is
not to present an Old Testament the-
ology, but to evaluate the
contributions of Leviticus 26 to Old Testa-
ment theology.
1 R.
Druck-
u. Verlagsanstalt, 1956).
2 Vassal-Treaties of
Esarhaddon.
3 KAI.
4 Joseph A. Fitzmyer, The Aramaic Inscriptions of Sefire, BibOr
19
(Rome: Pontifical Biblical Institute, 1967).
5 Eichrodt, Theology, 1:32 (emphasis his). For practical pur-
poses,
this statement by Eichrodt is a description of the concept of
progressive
revelation. God's revelation not only deals specifically
with
the needs of a particular time period in which his people live,
it
also builds upon previous revelation.
20
General Introduction to
Leviticus 26
Date and Authorship
Two major factors contribute to the writer's
conclusion that
Leviticus (and, thereby,
Leviticus 26) was written by Moses: (1) the
direct statements of Leviticus
to the effect that Moses was the recipi-
ent of the revelation contained
therein (cf. 1:1; 4:1; 5:14; 6:1 [Heb.,
5:20], 8 [Heb., 6:1], 19 [Heb.,
v. 12], 24 [Heb., v. 17]; 7:22, 28, 38;
8:1; 11:1; 12:1; 13:1; 14:1,
33; 15:1; 16:1, 2; 17:1; 18:1; 19:1; 20:1;
21:1, 16; 22:1, 17, 26; 23:1,
9, 23, 26, 33; 24:1, 13, 23; 25:1; 26:46;
27:1, 34); and, (2) the
"considerable degree of uncertainty"1 about any
alternative dating of Leviticus
as a whole or in part (especially the
Holiness Code of chapters 17-26
and chapter 26 alone2 ). In lieu of
reliable evidence to the
contrary, the prima-facie evidence of the
document's own claim to Mosaic
authorship must be allowed to stand.3
To do otherwise would be to
resort to conjecture, as admitted by the
1 Eissfeldt, The Old Testament, p. 238; cf. pp.
233-39.
2 Walther Zimmerli, Ezekiel 1: A Commentary on the Book of the
Prophet Ezekiel,
Chapters 1-24,
trans. Ronald E. Clements, ed. Frank
pp.
46-52. Zimmerli presents an excellent summary of the similarities
and
differences between Ezekiel and Leviticus 26 (ibid., p. 51) as
well
as a brief presentation of some of the various views of the author-
ship
of Leviticus 26, including Ezekiel as a possible author (ibid.,
pp.
46-47).
3 Cf.
"In
contradistinction to the inquisitorial method is that which pre-
sumes
a man to be innocent until he is proven guilty. As applied to
documents
it proceeds on the presumption that a document is to be pre-
sumed
to be what it purports to be until it shall be proved that it is
not."
Ibid., p. 27.
21
writers who question the Mosaic
authorship of Leviticus or of chapter
26 itself.1
Proceeding upon the assumption of Mosaic authorship,
Leviticus
26 has as its mise en scene the period of time
immediately subsequent
to the revelation of the
Sinaitic Covenant to Moses on Mt. Horeb/Sinai.
This setting must be recognized
for what effect it has on the revela-
tion in this pericope: exilic
statements should not be attributed to
prophecy after the occurrence
of the event (vaticinium ex eventu).
Contextual Considerations
The remote (the book of Leviticus) and the immediate
(chapters
25 and 27) contexts of
Leviticus 26 were unfolded in the discussion of
the significance of the
pericope in the book as a whole.2 Both contexts
indicate the covenant
relationship which dominates chapter 26. Chapter
25 belongs with chapter 26 as a
single literary unit consisting of two
sections: 25:1-55 and 26:1-46.
This literary unit is set apart by an
inclusion involving 25:1
("Then Yahweh spoke to Moses on
and 26:46 ("These are the
decrees, judgments, and instructions which
Yahweh presented between
himself and the sons of
through Moses").
Chapters 25 and 26 share the emphasis of the sabbatical
principle
1 See above, p. 20 nn. 1
and 2. Cf. Wenham, Leviticus, pp.
8-13;
Peter
R. Ackroyd, Exile and Restoration A Study
of Hebrew Thought of
the Sixth Century B.C., OTL (Philadelphia:
Westminster Press, 1968),
pp.
84-86. For additional confirmation of an early date for the context
of
Leviticus 26 (esp. chapter 25), see: Stephen Herbert Bess, "Systems
of
Land Tenure in Ancient Israel" (unpublished doctor of philosophy dis-
sertation,
2 See above, pp. 7-11.
22
while chapters 26 and 27 share the
emphasis of the vows and/or
promises. The pericope under
consideration, therefore, is not an
isolated or appended unit
lacking significant ties to its contexts.
This unity of material is also
conducive to the Mosaic authorship of
the entire book of Leviticus.1
1 For a defence of the
Mosaic authorship of the Pentateuch (and
thus,
Leviticus 26), see: Gleason L. Archer, Jr., A
Survey of Old
Testament Introduction (revised ed.,
105-18,
162-64; G. Herbert Livingston, The
Pentateuch in Its Cultural
Environment (Grand Rapids: Baker
Book House, 1974), pp. 205-69; M. H.
Segal,
The Pentateuch: Its Composition and Its
Authorship and Other
Biblical Studies (Jerusalem: Magnes
Press, 1967), pp. 6-27, 56-57.
CHAPTER II
A TEXT-CRITICAL ANALYSIS OF LEVITICUS 26
Leviticus 26 evidences a stable text presenting only
recurrent
variants which have little
effect upon the exegesis of the pericope.
This factor accounts for the
seeming neglect of text-critical discussion
in most of the commentaries.
The text-critical variants of the pericope
do offer some instructive
perspectives, however. They illustrate
current trends in Old Testament
textual criticism and reveal the charac-
ter of text-critical
apparatuses in the editions of the Hebrew Old
Testament.
The following studies in the text of Leviticus 26 are
presented
in the order of their
occurrence in the pericope. A summary of the
types of problems encountered
will be presented in tabular form at the
conclusion of this chapter.
Verse 2
The Syriac presents a minor variant with
(pwqdny)
"my ordinances" for yttbw "my sabbaths." This appears to be
nothing
more than a scribal error
(perhaps paramneia?) resulting from a confu-
sion of memory with either
25:18 or 26:3 where this term is employed
with the concept of
"keeping" (rmw tvcm).
Thus, the retroversion of
BHS (ytvcm) "my commandments") is consistent
with the Syriac-Hebrew
equivalents in the context but is
text-critically irrelevant since the
rendering is most likely due to
scribal error rather than to a
23
24
similar Vorlage. It would have been better had BHS given only the
transliterated Syriac variant (omitting
the irrelevant retroversion which
might lead one to believe that
a different Vorlage was probable).
Verse 9
The questionable character of the critical apparatuses in
both
BHK3 and BHS manifests itself in the lemma for
this verse. Both indi-
cate that Codex Hillel reads Mtx "them" instead of Mktx "you." How-
ever, Codex Hillel actually has
Mktx!1
Verse 11
The sole dissenting witness from the MT's ynkwm "my dwelling"
is the Septuagint's th>n diaqh<knh mou "my covenant."
However, the
testimony is divided among
Septuagint manuscripts, some of which read
skh?nh
"tabernacle" in place of diaqh<kh.2 It is again premature (or
presumptuous?) of BHK3 and BHS to offer a retroversion (ytyrb
"my cove-
nant"). The theological
association of the divine residency with the
covenant is familiar to the
student of the Old Testament (cf. Exod
24:7, 8, with 24:16; Lev 26:9
with 26:11; 1 Kgs 6:19 with 6:13; 8:1,
6, 21, 23, with 8:12; and,
especially Ezek 37:26 with 37:27). Several
explanations for the Septuagintal
reading may be offered before the text
critic should resort to
retroversion: (1) The scribe accidentally may
1 The
Pentateuch: Codex Hillel (
Ltd.,
1974), 2:297.
2 Alan
Greek According to the
Text of Codex Vaticanus, Supplemented from Other
Uncial Manuscripts (Cambridge: University
Press, 1909), 1/2:397.
25
have altered the MT due to the
proximity of Leviticus 26:9 (parablep-
sis?); (2) the scribe accidentally
may have altered the MT due to his
theological awareness of the
relationship between the divine presence
and the divine covenant
(perhaps via the Ezek 37:26-27 passage?). In
any case, there is no reason to
give the impression that some of the
Septuagint manuscripts
possessed a variant Hebrew Vorlage (as is
accomplished by offering a
retroversion).
An
additional observation is worthy of note: the massorah
indicates that ynkwm is found but three times in the Old Testament (
g o).
Such a notation is an
indication that this reading has been maintained
carefully so that it is not
altered by the Massoretic scribes. It is
indeed a marvel how often the
circellus in the MT appears "precisely
over words emended in the
apparatus of BHK or BHS!"1 The circellus
ought, to the contrary,
indicate to the textual critic that extreme
caution should be observed in
order not to alter the text.2 Certainly,
evidence for alteration in
Leviticus 26:11 is not weighty enough to
warrant emendation.
Verse 16
In this
verse another example of the preserving influence of
the massorah is discovered. The
MT hlhb "immediately" is
rendered by
some of the Samaritan
manuscripts as hlHb
"with sickness." The variant
1 Sanders, "Text and Canon," p.
18.
2 Ibid., p. 17. For a different viewpoint
concerning the massorah,
see:
IDB, s.v. "Text, OT," by B.
J. Roberts, 4:586. The notations of
the
massorah do not establish the text, they merely confirm the reli-
ability
of the prima-facie evidence.
26
may be due to a confusion of
the Samaritan script's h ( ) and H ( ).
Since there is no other witness
to support the Samaritan, the MT should
be maintained. Sanders
expresses succinctly the force of the massorah's
lamed (l) in such cases
A lamed in the mp, keyed by the Massoretes to a
word in the line
indicated, stands like a soldier to remind the
next scribe that the
word in question must be copied precisely as
written or corrected
in the Vorlage. The text critic who takes the
massorae seriously
and pursues each case far enough soon realizes
that there was often
good reason for them. The word in question with
a lamed in mp is a
hapax in the detailed form in the text. There is
no other quite
like it anywhere else in the Bible and it must
be guarded in its
particularity; it must retain its peculiarity
and not be assimi-
lated to another form of the word more common in
the Bible or else-
where.1
Verse 17
The
major text-critical problem of this verse involves the MT's
vdrv
"and they shall rule" in contrast to the Septuagint's kai> diw<contai
= vpdrv (?) "and they shall pursue."2
This lemma illustrates the need
for considering the translation
techniques of the Greek versions (espe-
cially
addition, this lemma
demonstrates the failure of BHS to
give an adequate
accounting of relevant
variants.3
The
Hexaplaric variants unfortunately were omitted by both BHK3
and BHS. Alloi present paideu<sousin "they shall
chastise" and e]pikrath<-
1 Sanders, "Text and Canon," p.
17.
2 Cf. Dominique Barthelemy, et al., Preliminary and Interim
Report on the Hebrew Old
Testament Text Project, 3 vols. (2nd revised
ed.,
3 John Wm. Wevers, "Text History and
Text Criticism of the Sep-
tuagint,"
VTSup 29 (Leiden: E. J. Brill, 1978), pp. 395-97.
27
sousin
"they shall rule over/prevail/conquer."1 It appears that
the
Greek version of
normally rendered hdr by e]pikrate<w.2 Symmachus is credited with kata-
doulw<sontai
"they shall enslave," while Theodotion agrees with Alloi.3
All three Greek readings are in
harmony with the concept of the MT.
The concept of chastisement is
interpretive: the subjection of
to another nation was a matter
of chastisement for disobedience to
God.4 The concept of
enslavement is likewise interpretive since sub-
jection may result in
enslavement. However, katadoulo<w may
have the
meaning, "absolute subjection
or the loss of autonomy."5 The Septuagint
reading may be interpretive
also since subjection involves persecution
or even expulsion.6
The Septuagint may be understood also as an assim-
ilation of this part of the
verse to the last section of the verse.
Another
text-critical aspect of the reading vdrv is the
massorah
indicating that this form
occurs only twice: here and in Isaiah 14:2.
The Massoretic notation again
preserves the integrity of the text. The
MT's circellus alerts the reader
to this confirmatory evidence (as in
the previously discussed
examples at vv. 11 and 16).
1 Fridericus Field, ed., Origenis Hexaplorum quae supersunt sive
Veterum Interpretum
Graecorum in Totum Vetus Testamentum, 2 vols. (Oxonii:
2 Ibid., n. 23. Cf. Joseph Reider, An Index to
Turner,
VTSup 12 (Leiden: E. J. Brill, 1966), pp. 92, 309.
3 Field, Origenis Hexaplorum, 1:215.
4 TDNT,
S.V. "paideu<w," by Georg Bertram, 5:606-12.
5 TDNT,
S.V. "dou?loj," by Karl Heinrich Rengstorf, 2:279.
6 TDNT,
s.v. "diw<kw," by Albrecht Oepke, 2:229.
28
Verse 20
A minor
variant exists in the current text of this verse which
has been ignored by the
commentaries: the substitution of hdWh
"the
field" for Crxh "the land" in the last part of the
verse. Crxh is
supported by
Onqelos (majority of
manuscripts; incorrectly identified as Targum
Jonathan by BHS), and the Syriac Peshitta (omitted
by both BHK3 and
BHS). hdWh is
supported by the Samaritan Pentateuch, the Septuagint,
at least four manuscripts of
Targum Onqelos, Targum Neophyti I, the
Syriac Hexapla, and the Arabic.
A number of Hebrew manuscripts also
possess this latter reading. The
Latin Vulgate chose to omit the term
altogether.2
The
greatest influence on the variant reading appears to have
been verse 4 which is a very
close parallel. Both BHK3
and BHS indi-
cate this situation by "ut
4." The variant could have arisen through
unintentional memory error
(paramneia?) or through intentional harmoni-
zation.
The
infrequency of hdW in
Leviticus (and, in Deuteronomy)3 con-
firms the MT reading. The
combination hdWh Cf
"trees of the field"
occurs only in verse 4 and
Deuteronomy 20:19. In Ugaritic the pair
1 David Noel Freedman, "Variant
from
2 As in Wenham's translation (Leviticus, p. 325).
3 hdW (25x in Leviticus, 13x
in Deuteronomy) vs. Crx (82x in Levi-
ticus,
198x in Deuteronomy): Peter M. K. Morris and Edward James, A
Critical Word Book of
Leviticus, Numbers, Deuteronomy, vol. 8 of The
Computer Bible, ed. J. Arthur Baird
and David Noel Freedman (
MT:
Scholars Press and Biblical Research Associates, Inc., 1975), pp.
102,
109, 128, 138.
29
ars // sd "land // field" occurs in
the same context as the combination
‘sm
ars
"trees of the land," offering further confirmation of the MT in
both verses 4 and 20.1
Verse 24
Like
verse 20 with its attraction to verse 4, verse 24 has been
attracted to verse 28 by either
paramneia or harmonization. In this
case, the text-critical problem
involves more than a single word and
has a greater breadth of textual
evidence to consider. The MT reads,
yrqb
Mkmf ynx-Jx ytklhv "then, indeed, I myself shall walk in
opposition
to you." The Samaritan
Pentateuch only alters the particle Jx
"indeed"
to Mg "even," which is a semantic
equivalent.2 This variant is the
only one recognized by either BHK3 or BHS. Translation ad sensum
for
yrq
"opposition" is manifested in some Septuagint manuscripts (plagi<wj
"contrary to," e]mfhloneikwj "obstinately," e]nanti<wj "against"), the
Targums (vywqb "with difficulty," yrm "rebellious/contentious/obsti-
nate") , the Syriac ( qry’yt "contentiously,”
ptyl’yt
"obliquely/contrary"), and the Latin Vulgate (adversus). All
of these renderings have the
sense of opposition or adversity.
The
majority testimony of the Septuagint, however, reads qu<w
plagi<&
"in adverse anger" (or, "in angry/fervent
adversity/opposition").
BHK3 and BHS ignore this reading, however,
choosing instead to recognize
the lesser variant regarding
the particle. The evidence from
appears to lend support to the
Septuagint with yrq tmHb
"in fervent/
angry opposition"
(11QLev). Support may be found also in the margin of
1 UT
126:3-6 (p. 193).
2 GKC, pp. 483 (§153), 484 (§154a n. 1).
30
Targum Neophyti I: vywqbv hmHb "with anger and with difficulty."
This
reading, however, appears to be
conflate. It expands and emphasizes the
adverbial phrase in order to
express more fully the translator's inter-
pretation of the character of
divine opposition.
The
term yrq is limited to Leviticus where it
is always found
in construction with by Mf jlh "walk with" and occurs only in
chapter 26
(vv. 21, 23, 24, 27, 28, 40,
41). The occurrence of hmH
"anger" in
verse 28 is a hapax legomenon in Leviticus. It would
appear that
verse 28 (yrq-tmHb "with angry/fervent opposition")
has been the primary
factor in the variant history
of verse 24 in both the Septuagint and
the
Verse 31
According
to Barr, BHS has a tendency to
"cite 'nonn Mss' or
'mlt Mss' in support of a
variation, when these are in most cases late
medieval manuscripts"
having "no independent evidential value"1 (when
considered in the light of the
ancient sources, such as the Samaritan,
Septuagint,
do support the singular Mkwdqm "your sanctuary" as opposed to the MT
plural Mkywdqm "your sanctuaries." The latter
is supported by the
Septuagint, Targum Onqelos, and
the Latin Vulgate. The context of the
verse presents a number of
pluralities: "your high places," "your
incense altars," and
"your cities" (vv. 30-31). Thus, the concept of a
plurality of idolatrous
sanctuaries is not antagonistic to the immediate
context. Indeed, the
parallelism of the first portion of verse 31
("your cities") would
seem to require the following plural, "your sanctu-
1 James Barr, review of Biblia Hebraica Stuttgartensia, in JTS
30
(1979):213-14.
31
aries." The idolatrous
practices of the Israelites would one day per-
meate their entire nation with
idol sanctuaries existing in many of its
cities (cf. 1 Kgs 12:29; Amos
8:14).
Verses 34 and 35
The
text-critical apparatuses of BHK3
and BHS for these two
verses exhibit misleading
information. The citation, without explana-
tion, of the Samaritan variant hmwx "guilt" (vv. 34 and 35) leaves the
reader in a quandary: Is the
notation intended to suggest a different
Vorlage for the Samaritan
Pentateuch in these verses? However, the MT
is supported by the fact that
the reference to this verse (or, to this
verse's concept) in 2
Chronicles 36:21 maintains hmwh
"its desolation/
devastation." The x in the Samaritan could be explained by the
possi-
bility of a miscorrection
of hmwxh, since
the Samaritan is known to
have inserted vocalic x's from time to time.1 If this seems
to be too
far afield, let one consider
the possibility that there was virtually
no theological difference
between the concrete result of
obedience
("devastation") and the abstract result of
ence
("guilt/sin"). In the mind of
the scribe(s) they may have been
understood as one and the same.
Either way, the reading can be
explained without resorting to
a differing Vorlage.
BHS's notation that the Septuagint
adds au]th?j "its" is
unnec-
essary. The Hop’al infinitive absolute has the third
feminine pronominal
1 Adolf Brull, Das samaritanische Targum zum Pentateuch, Anhang 1:
Kritische Studien (reprint ed.,
p.
19 nn. 40 and 41. The inserted x in such a case could be
an argument
for
the pointing hmwhA (as in 2 Chr 36:21) rather than hmwhI (Lev 26:34).
32
suffix appended: hm.Awa.hA = h.m.Awa.hA
"its devastation."1 The Septuagint,
therefore, was merely
translating the form accurately, not providing a
variant reading. In fact, the
Samaritan, Syriac, and Latin Vulgate all
accurately include the
pronominal suffix exhibited in the MT and the
Septuagint.
It
should also be noted that the MT includes a circellus over
both forms of hmwh (vv. 34 and 35). The same is true of hmwhb "in its
devastation" in verse 43
which suffered the same alteration in the
Samaritan. The massorah could
indicate, therefore, the Massoretes'
understanding of corruptions to
the text and they took steps to insure
that later scribes realized the
importance of copying the text accu-
rately here.2
Both BHK3 and BHS note that the Samaritan has a clearly feminine
form for tcrhv "and she shall enjoy" (= htcrhv). This
should not be
taken as an indication that the
MT does not have the feminine form.
The third feminine singular of
the perfect (qtl) does occur with
just
the t ending.3
Verse 39
BHS cites the Septuagint's dia> ta>j a[marti<aj u[mw?n
"because of
your sins" as a variant
for the MT's Mnvfb
"because of/in their iniqui-
ties/guilt." The major
problem is that of the pronominal suffix since
the concept is the same. it is
significant that there is Septuagintal
1 GKC, pp. 182 (§67y), 256 (§91e).
2 Sanders, "Text and Canon," pp.
17-18.
3 GKC, p. 209 (§75i).
33
support for the third person pronominal
suffix1 (a fact not indicated
by BHS) and that the daughter versions of the Greek Old Testament all
support the third person
reading.2 The ignoring of the manuscript evi-
dence and the daughter versions
by BHS produces a misconception of
the
ancient Greek versional
evidence.
The
most problematic lemma of this verse, however, is Mkybyx
"your enemies." The
second masculine plural pronominal suffix is chal-
lenged by a qere in Codex Muga (a ninth-century
codex evidently
by the same scribe as Codex Or.
4445 of the British Museum3), a multi-
tude ("mlt" = 20-60)4
of manuscripts, the Samaritan Pentateuch, and the
versions (at least a plurality,
if not all).5 The reading supported
by this array of witnesses is the
third masculine plural pronominal suf-
fix Mh_ "their." Although neither BHK3 nor BHS state in their appara-
tuses that this latter reading
should be accepted, the very method of
citation would have a
psychological effect upon a text critic influenced
by quantity rather than
quality. Even the careful critic might assume
that these apparatuses testify
to a nearly unanimous witness which has
few, if any, contrary voices.
However, the following facts surface
upon closer scrutiny: (1) Codex
Muga is a prejudicing citation since
its contribution is but a qere and no statement is made concerning
Codex
1 Brooke and McLean, eds., The Old Testament in Greek, p. 401.
2 Field, Origenis Hexaplorum, 1:216.
3 Ernst Wurthwein, Der Text des Alten Testaments (4th
edition,
revised,
4 BHS,
p. xlvii. Cf. BHK3, p. 186
("87 MSS").
5 BHS,
p. xlviii.
34
Or. 4445 (i.e., whether it, as
a manuscript by the same scribe, agrees
by text or qere). Such information would help in evaluating the evi-
dence. In fact, this piece of
evidence may be duplicated in the "mlt"
following in the apparatus. (2)
BHK3 cites "87
MSS" while BHS indicates
at least 27 less! (3) BHK3's "Edd"
(editions) is also a prejudicing
citation since these comprise
other editors' opinions of a similar
nature to those found in BHK3 and BHS. Editions are not
primary evi-
dence, but secondary (or, even
tertiary)! (4) Among the versions,
nal suffix by u[mw?n "your" in contrast to his less than
literal fellows
in the Hexapla who unanimously
have au]tw?n "their."1
(5) There are dis-
senting witnesses in the
manuscripts of Onqelos' Targum.2 (6) Lastly,
a circellus is to be observed
over the three occurrences of Mhybyx
"their enemies" in
verses 36, 41, and 44. The massorah points out that
this form does appear these
three times in this context.3 There is no
inclusion of a like form or
notation by the massorah in verse 39. That
would seem to indicate that the
Massoretes were guarding the occurrences
in verses 36, 41, and 44 from a
corrupting influence (Mkybyx
"your ene-
mies") found in verses 7,
17, 34, 37, 38, and 39. In addition, the
Rabbinic Bible places a
circellus over Mkybyx
"your enemies" in verse 39
1 Field, Origenis Hexaplorum, 1:216.
2 Alexander Sperber, ed., The Bible in Aramaic, 5 vols. (
E.
J. Brill, 1959-73), 1:214, 4B:282. The Ongelos Targum in the Pabbinic
Bible
has the second person pronominal suffix. tvlvdg tvxrqm, 10 vols.
(New
York: Pardes Publishing House, Inc., 1951), 3:loc. cit.
3 BHS,
p. 205. Cf. Gerard E. Weil, ed., Massorah
Gedolah Manu-
scrit B. 19a de
Leningrad,
vol. 1: Les Listes (
Pontifical,
1971), p. 99 (#821). BHK3
omits this massorah.
35
and cites a Sevir:l Mhybyx
ylb NyfFm "in this it is misleading to
read Mhybyx 'their enemies'" (or, "occasion
for error is given with
Mhybyx").
Thus, with these six preceding points in mind, the case for
the current reading in the MT
is stronger than one is led to believe by
either BHK3 or BHS.
This
verse and its lemmas have demonstrated the value of
carefully evaluating the
text-critical apparatuses of BHK3
and BHS
due to their incompleteness and
misleading information. It has also
produced additional examples of
the values of the massorah and of the
Greek daughter versions
(especially
Verse 41
The
first lemma in this verse is presented by BHS.
BHS offers
the Septuagint's kai> a]polw? "and I shall
destroy" in place of the MT's
ytxbhv
"and I shall bring out" and provides the retroversion ytdbxhv
"and I shall
destroy." The citation of the retroversion in BHS includes
a question mark indicating that
there might be evidence of a differing
Vorlage. However, the semantic
range of a]polu<w
includes the meaning of
exile or deportation.2
The Septuagint, therefore, may be taken as being
consistent with the concept of
the MT.
The
second lemma consists of the double particle zx-vx
"whether/
if then" which provides
several interesting considerations: (1) the
necessity for a critical
edition of the Syriac Peshitta, (2) the contri-
bution
of rabbinic scholarship, (3) the BHK3
penchant for emendation,
1 tvlvdg tvxrqm, 3:loc . cit. With regard to the Sevirin, cf.
Robert
Gordis, The Biblical Text in the Making A
Study of Kethib-Qere
(New
York: Ktav Publishing House, 1971), pp. 26-28.
2 LSJ, p. 208.
36
and (4) the Septuagint's
influence on the Samaritan Targum of the
Pentateuch.
Both BHK3 and BHS cite the Syriac in this lemma as unfavorable
to the MT but favorable to the
Septuagint. BHS offers a translitera-
tion of the Syriac and a Hebrew
retroversion: "whjdjn = zxAv;."1 BHK3
offers only an ambiguous
retroversion: “zxA(v;).”2
It may be noted
that the Syriac is still a
double particle which could reflect the
translator's understanding of vx as a conjunctive ("or") rather than
as
a conditional ("if"),
an emphatic ("even"), or an interrogative
("whether") particle.
Syriac does have an equivalent to vx: ‘w
It is employed for the Hebrew
conjunctive vx three
times in Leviticus
25:49. The fourth occurrence of
conditional vx near
the end of the
verse is rendered in Syriac
by w’n "and if/if."
Therefore, the
availability of the Syriac does not guarantee its use--especially
in conditional clauses. The
reading in the Peshitta in 26:41 could be
an assimilation to the
occurrence of zxv and
then" later in the verse
(where the Syriac is identical
in meaning: whydyn "and
then"). The Syro-Hexaplar,
on the other hand, shows definite signs of
conformity to the Septuagint: zx-vx =
hydyn = to<te = "then"
(v. 41a) and zxv =
whydyn = kai> to<te = "and then" (v.
41b).3
A critical edition of the
Syriac Peshitta is in preparation, though the
1 BHS,
p. 205.
2 BHK3,
p. 187.
3 Samuel Lee, ed., Ktb' qdys’ [
and
Foreign Bible Society, ca. 1823 , was employed for this study. The
Syro-Hexaplar
source was: Arthur Voobus, The Pentateuch
in the Version
of the Syro-Hexapla, CSCO 369 (Louvain:
Secretariat du CorpusSCO, 1975).
37
Leviticus volume is yet
unavailable.1 Perhaps it will prove to be of
interest and enlightening
concerning this problem. Meanwhile, there is
no direct evidence that the
present Syriac contradicts the MT.
In the
Rabbinic Bible the commentaries of Rashi (Rabbi Shelomo
Yitzchaki, d. 1105) and Ramban
(Rabbi Moses ben Nachman, called Nach-
manides, 1194-1270) are
included. Both relate this lemma to the use
of vx as a conditional particle
("if/whether") in Exodus 21:36.2 The
grammars do not cite Leviticus
26:41, but they do cite Exodus 21:36 as
an example of the conditional
use of vx.3 This grammatical
identifica-
tion is not the same as that
given by the Hebrew Old Testament Text
Project4 nor by
Elliger5 who refer to it as introducing an indirect
question.6 However,
the rendering in GKC ("if perchance")7 indicates
that the two classifications
are quite closely related if not overlap-
ping to the extent that they
cannot be adequately separated.
While BHS is satisfied with offering a
citation of critical
evidence, BHK3 stepped out on a limb by suggesting an emendation:
"1 frt
1 The Peshitta Institute of the
Old Testament in Syriac
According to the Peshitta Version (
Brill,
1966- ).
2 tvlvdg tvxrqm, loc. cit.
3 E.g., GKC, p. 498 (g159cc); P. Paul Jouon, Grammaire de l’He-
breu Biblique (reprint ed.,
p. 517 (§167q).
4 Barthelemy, Preliminary and Interim Report, 1:205.
5 Karl Elliger, Leviticus, HAT 1/4 (
Mohr/Paul
Siebeck, 1966), p. 363.
6 GKC, p. 475 (§150i).
7 Ibid.
38
cPS zx(v;)"
("read perhaps with Septuagint and Syriac, zx(v;).1
This sort of emendatory
suggestion has brought justified criticism.
Upon
checking the Samaritan Targum,2 the writer discovered that
the Septuagint's to<te "then" had been transliterated
into the Samaritan:
(Hebrew transliteration: hFF). This sort of occurrence was
noted by Brull over a century
ago (though he did not cite this particu-
lar passage),3 but
has received little attention since that time. Tal,
in a recent study, emphasized
Arabic and Aramaic corruptions of the
Samaritan Targum,4
but only mentioned Greek corruptions in passing.5
The Samaritan Targum, like
other witnesses, increase in text-critical
value in direct proportion to
the increased knowledge and understanding
of those witnesses.
Verse 42
BHS and BHK3 both note that the Septuagint omits the first per-
son singular suffix of ytyrb "my covenant" in this verse. However,
they
do not note that there are
Septuagint manuscripts supporting the suffix
(mou
“my”).6 BHS
indicates that the Syriac insertion of
d’m
1 BHK3 , p. 187.
2 Brull, Das samaritanische Targum, 3:151. Cf. H. Petermann, ed.,
Pentateuchus Samaritanus
(Berolini:
W. Moeser, 1872-91), p. 342.
3 Brull, Das samaritanische Targum, 1:33, 2:40. occurs in
v.
34 (2x) and v. 41 (2x) and other passages in the Pentateuch cited by
Brull.
4 A. Tal, "The Samaritan Targum to
the Pentateuch, Its Distinctive
Characteristics
and Its Metamorphosis," JSS 21
(1976):26-38.
5 Ibid., p. 29.
6 Brooke and McLean, eds., The Old Testament in Greek, p. 401.
39
"with" between ytyrb and the proper noun following it throughout
this
verse is equivalent to the
Hebrew Mf "with." BHK3 proposes that the
Hebrew order be altered from ytyrb-tx to -tx
ytyrb on
the basis of the
Syriac. Both suggestions are
unnecessary since the syntax of the phrase
in the MT has been translated
accurately by the Syriac.1 The BHK3
pro-
posal for the alternation of
word order is also contradicted by the
massorah (note the circellus
over the first tx). The
massorah indicates
both the position of the
particle near the beginning of the verse and
the triple occurrence of that
particle within the same verse. Once
again, the MT should be
maintained in spite of the impressions one
might receive from the
apparatuses of BHK3 and BHS.
Verse 43
The
comments made above concerning verses 34-35 suffice as an
answer to the BHS lemmas
regarding this verse.
Verse 44
The
triple particle construction at the head of this verse has
produced a text-critical
discussion due to the apparent difference in
some Targum manuscript(s?)
cited by BHS (but not by BHK3). In checking
this supposed variation, it is
discovered that neither Targum Onqelos
(via Sperber:2 xd Mrb Jxv "yet nevertheless this"), Targum
Yerushalmi
(via Sperber:3 xdb Mrb dvHlv "except only in
this"), nor Neophyti I
(which actually lacked vv.
42-44 and was reconstructed as xdhb Jvxv
1 GKC, p. 426 (§131r). The suggestion of a
dittography of the y
is
unnecessary (cf. GKC, p. 415 [§128d]).
2 Sperber, The Bible in Aramaic, 1:215.
3 Ibid.
40
"and also in this")1
contain BHS's citation of the simple
bd’ (xdb "in
this"). None of the
manuscripts referred to disagree with the MT in
their Aramaic translations. More
significantly, none of the manuscripts
has the same reading in verse
44 as in verse 27--which is offered as
the reason for the supposed
variation in the Targums by BHS and
as the
reason for the proposed
emendation by BHK3. To
emend txz-Mg-Jxv
"yet
in spite of this" to txzb-Jxv "yet in this" (or, "and
even in this")
would decrease the emphasis
presented by this array of particles.2
Also, it would betray the
massorah which carefully marked the particle
construction in verse 27 (txzb-Mxv "and if in this") for
preservation
and noted the primary position
of Jxv "yet" (or, "and
yet") in verse 44.
The
plural tvcrxb "in the
lands" for the MT singular Crxb
"in
the land" is found in the
Samaritan. However, the Samaritan is best
explained by the influence of
the plural suffixes on the translator.
The BHS citation of Septuagint miniscule
manuscript(s?) for the
second person plural pronominal
suffix at the end of the verse in place
of the MT's third person plural
is significant in that this citation of
minor Greek witnesses was
employed in a place of editorial advantage.
In the preceding discussions it
has been observed that such evidence
was conveniently ignored when
it was contrary to the editorial opinion.
This type of subjective
recording of textual evidence is not conducive
to accuracy and does not merit
the trust of students. The massorah's
1 Alejandro Diez Macho, Neophyti I: Targum Palestinense MS de
la Biblioteca Vaticana, 5 vols. (
gaciones
Cientificas, 1971), 3:202-3.
2 C. F. Keil and F. Delitzsch, The Pentateuch, vol. 2, trans.
James
Martin, in Biblical Commentary on the Old
Testament (reprint ed.,
41
circellus over the compound divine
title (Mhyhlx hvhy
"Yahweh their
God") indicates that the
Massoretes believed this title (including the
third person plural pronominal
suffix) should be preserved.
Verse 46
The
text-critical lemma in this verse concerns the MT's plural
trvthv "and
the laws" as compared to the Septuagint's singular o[ no<moj
"the law." The
Hexapla demonstrates that the Greek daughter versions
followed the MT: oi[ no<moi "the laws."
ered one of them. His
literalness would argue strongly for the MT.
The circellus over this form
also argues for the preservation of the
plural. The use of the t as a feminine singular absolute termination
would be a rarity1
with little support here. The Septuagint's reading
probably exhibits more interpretation
than translation.
Summary
It
should be evident to the reader by now that the text-critical
apparatuses of BHK3 and BHS have proven quite disappointing to
this
researcher. The omissions,
miscitations, prejudices, and carelessness
of the two apparatuses render
them practically useless to those unable
to check the manuscripts and
versions for themselves. This disappoint-
ment over the more recent BHS is shared by other reviewers. Barr
says,
"it is sad to have to say
that the critical apparatus of BHS represents
a step backward rather than
forward in comparison with BHK (which itself
was not so very good)."2
1 GKC, pp. 223-24 (480f-g) .
2 Barr, "review," p. 215.
42
The
instruction of Sanders concerning the placement of the
circellus has been fruitful
throughout this pericope. It has proven
to be significant by its
consistent presence where emendation has been
sought by BHK3 or BHS.
The material presented in this section of the
study could be expanded easily
by a more detailed survey of the trans-
lational techniques of the
ancient versions (especially the Septuagint,
the Greek daughter versions,
the Samaritan Pentateuch, the Syriac
Peshitta, and the Targums).
However, such is not within the scope or
purpose of this dissertation.
The
following chart is offered as a convenient summary of the
nature of the text-critical
problems discussed in this study:
1.
Scribal
1.1 - Error: verses 2 (Syriac), 16 (Samaritan),
20 (Samaritan,
Septuagint), 31
(Samaritan, Syriac), 34-35 (Samari-
tan), 44 (Samaritan)
1.2 - Alteration: verses 11 (Septuagint), 20
(Samaritan, Septuagint)
2.
Editorial (BHK3 and/or BHS)
2.1 - Error: verses 9 (Hebrew ms), 20 (Targums),
34-35 (Samaritan,
Septuagint), 44
(Targums)
2.2 - Incompleteness: verses 11 (Septuagint).,
17 (Greek versions),
24 (Septuagint), 39
(Septuagint, Greek versions, Tar-
gums), 42 (Septuagint),
44 (Targums), 46 (Greek ver-
sions)
2.3 - Miscellaneous: verses 39 (Hebrew mss,
editions, Greek versions,
Targums), 41
(Septuagint, Syriac), 44 (Septuagint)
3. Massorah:
verses 11, 16, 17, 34-35, 39, 42, 44, 46
4.
Miscellaneous sources of solution:
verses 24 (translation techniques),
31 (context), 41 (translation techniques,
rabbinics),
42 (syntax)
This chart demonstrates that:
(1) The Samaritan text is the most likely
to be subject to scribal error
in Leviticus 26. (2) The Septuagint of
43
Leviticus 26 is the freest in
its handling of the text. (3) The text-
critical apparatuses of BHK3 and BHS evidence carelessness in several
areas, but especially regarding
the Septuagint, Greek versions, and
Targums. (4) The massorah may
be a major factor in the text-critical
study of the Old Testament.
CHAPTER III
AN
EXEGETICAL ANALYSIS OF LEVITICUS 26
The
Massoretic divisions of the text of Leviticus traditionally
have included 26:1-2 with 25:55
and have made these three verses the
second half of 25:47-26:2.
There is much to be said, however, for a
break between 25:55 and 26:1-2.
Some commentators believe the break is
so certain that they often
consider 26:1-2 an insertion.1 The peculi-
arity of 26:1-2 argues for
annexion to the following pericope rather
than isolation from it. Moses
purposefully emphasized
relationship to Yahweh at the
commencement of this section dealing with
covenant blessings and curses.
These "elemental dimensions of covenant"2
provide the ground for the
remainder of the pericope. Without verses
1-2, the following verses have
no specified antecedent for the "stat-
utes" (HQh) and "commandments" (hvcm) of Yahweh (cf. v. 3). It is
noteworthy that the refrain,
"I am Yahweh (your God)," provides "a
double formula at the beginning
and end of the chapter"3 (vv. 1, 2, 13
44, 45). The following
exegetical analysis, therefore, recognizes the
1 Cf. J. R. Porter, Leviticus, CBC (
Press,
1976), p. 207; Shalom M. Paul, Studies in
the Book of the Cove-
nant in the Light of
Cuneiform and Biblical Law, VTSup 18 (
Brill,
1970), p. 34.
2 Walter Brueggemann, The Land: Place as Gift, Promise, and
Challenge in Biblical
Faith (Philadelphia:
Fortress Press, 1977), p. 67.
3 Wenham, Leviticus, p. 327.
44
45
unity of Leviticus 26:1-46. The
major divisions of the pericope con-
sist of Precept (vv. 1-2),
Promise (vv. 3-13), Penalty (vv. 14-45), and
postscript (v. 46).1
Precept (vv. 1-2)
Prohibition of Idols (v. 1)
The
apodictic formula of this prohibition emphasizes the abso-
lute responsibility of
not optional. The threefold
repetition of the l
preposition underscores
the intent of the idol-makers:
personal worship (Mkl
"for yourselves,"
twice; tvHtwhl "to bow down/worship," once).
The l in Mkl could intro-
duce a dativus commodi (i.e., dative of interest or benefit). The idols
were believed to be beneficial,
possessing powers which could enrich the
lives of their worshippers
(both physically and spiritually). These
benefits would accrue to the one
who acted as a vassal in the presence
of his suzerain.2
Being a vassal to an idol (or, idols) made it impos-
sible to be a vassal to Yahweh.
Either Yahweh was the sole suzerain,
or the Israelite had breached
the covenant.
The
covenant stipulations prohibited the production (hWf
xl),
the erection (Mvq xl), and the appointment/designation (Ntn xl)3 of
1 Cf. Elliger, Leviticus, p. 363.
2 Cf. J. A. Thompson, The Book of Jeremiah, NICOT (
William
B. Eerdmans Publishing Company, 1980), p. 275. tvHtwh is an
infinitive
construct Histap'el (or, St-stem)
with a causative-reflexive
force,
from the root hvH. Cf. Thomas O. Lambdin, Introduction to Bib-
lical Hebrew (New York: Charles
Scribner's Sons, 1971), p. 254 (§181).
A
discussion of the force and significance of the .t-stem may be found
in
GAG, pp. 122-23 (§94).
3 Cf. BDB, pp. 680-81. Ntn has within its semantic
range the con-
cepts
of designation, assigning, confirming, imputing, and constituting--
as
with covenants, kings, decrees, ordinances, etc. It is the writer's
46
idols. The three verbs are not
necessarily synonymous. Each verb may
be understood as furthering the
concept introduced by the previous verb.
In this fashion, each verb
narrows the focus: making --> raising -->
appointing. The focus is on the
concept of exclusive authority. Their
exclusivity and authority were
not actually inherent. These qualities
were derived from their
worshippers who attributed exclusivity and
authority to them as representatives
of supernatural beings. The oppo-
site is true of Yahweh, the
covenant deity of
and authority are inherent, his
suzerainty independent of human attri-
bution and unique in the
universe--he alone is God (cf. Isa 43:10-11,
15; 44:6-21; 46:5-11; see,
also, 1 Cor 8:4).
Four
classes of idols are listed: "idols" (lylx),
“images”
(lsp),
"pillars" (hbcm) , and
"figure stones" (tykWm Nbx). The
first
noun appears to be employed
with a pejorative sense as a general term
for all idols:
"worthless/powerless."1 The second noun refers to the
fact that these idols had been
handmade, cut or carved from stone or
wood.2 The third
noun is basically equivalent to a menhir,
a memorial
stone in which a deity was
thought to reside.3 The fourth noun seems
to present the concept of an
attractive carved relief in stone.4 As a
opinion
that Ntn,
in this context, conveys the concept of setting up
something
in such a manner that the observers understand that it is
authoritative,
that it demands respect and vassalage. Cf. Ntn's use
for
the appointment of a king (1 Sam 12:13), a leader (Num 14:4), a
prophet
(Jer 1:5), and an idol-priest (2 Kgs 23:5).
1 TDOT,
s.v. “lylix<“, by Horst Dietrich Preuss, 1:285-87. Cf.
Targum
Onqelos, vfF
"something causing to go astray."
2 BDB, p. 820.
3 Cf., out of many sources, Eichrodt, Theology, 1:115-17; de
Vaux,
Ancient
4 Zimmerli, Ezekiel 1, p. 221; BDB, p. 967.
47
group, these four classes are representative
of all idols. These terms
also convey the breadth of
idolatrous worship in the ancient Near East.
Such worship was well-developed
and had its appealing aspects.1
The
ultimate reason for the prohibition of idols is succinctly
expressed in the Selbstvorstellungsformel
("self-introduction formula"):2
"for I am Yahweh your
God." The contrast is self-explanatory. Yahweh's
inherent exclusive authority
made idols worthless, powerless, anthropo-
centric, empty, and without
spiritually redeeming values. There is no
room for divided loyalties.
Yahweh insists upon exclusive lordship in
the lives of the Israelites.
This prohibition of idolatry was "not due
to pettiness on Yahweh's part.
It has to do with the character of
Yahweh and the character of the
other gods."3 The Selbstvorstellungs-
formel
is
the key phrase in Leviticus 18-26.4 The awareness of Yahweh's
existence, identity, and
presence was central to the covenant relation-
ship which
Preservation
of Sabbaths and Sanctuary (v. 2)
The
change from apodictic prohibition to deictic requirement is
heralded by a change in the
word order to emphasize the sabbaths and
the sanctuary: the direct
objects precede the verbs. The employment
1 For further information on idols, see:
Shalom m. Paul and
William
G. Dever, Biblical Archaeology, in Library of Jewish Knowledge,
ed.
Geoffrey Wigoder (
1973),
pp. 272-77.
2 John Van Seters, "Confessional
Reformulation in the Exilic
Period,"
VT 22 (1972):455.
3 Brueggemann, The Land, p. 57.
4 Wenham, Leviticus, p. 250.
48
of the imperfect (yqtl) forms as imperatives does not seem
to reflect
any softening of the force of
the commands. Instead, it appears that
they were chosen in order to
maintain the continuity of force already
introduced in verse 1 by the yqtl of prohibition.1
The
sabbath observance (v. 2a)
"My
sabbaths" (Yttbw)
possesses two points of significance
the presence of the first
person singular pronominal suffix and the
employment of the plural.
Yahweh identified himself in verse 1. Now,
in verse 2, he identifies the
sabbaths as being his. Due to the prox-
imity of Leviticus 25, one must
consider that the plural in 26:2
includes at least the weekly
sabbaths and the sabbatical years. Per-
haps the year of jubilee should
also be included since it is an exten-
sion of the sabbatical
principle concerning the sabbatical year obser-
vances.
Sabbath
observance is theologically rich. It specially signi-
fies God's dominion over
Israel.2 God's sovereignty over
his establishment of
1 The employment of the prefix tense (yqtl) suggests that the
prepositive
position of the direct objects draws sufficient attention
away
from the imperatives to cause the writer to utilize a verb form with
less
emphasis upon the root concept of the verb. The imperative is not
preceded
by prefixation; therefore, the root concept of the verb remains
undiluted.
The yqtl forms in v. 1, like those in
the Decalogue, direct
the
emphasis to the negative (XL). Yqtl prefixation does not affect
time,
mood, or aspect; it merely allows attention to be focused on some-
thing
other than the semantics of the root from which it was derived.
E.g.,
VRmwt
"(you) keep/observe" in v. 2 directs attention to that which
is
to be observed (Yttbw) rather than to the keeping itself (Rmw). The
word
order aids in this focusing of attention. Had the writer desired
to
place more emphasis upon the actual observing/keeping, he would have
employed
the non-prefixed imperative (rmw "Keep:"). Cf.
J. Weingreen,
A Practical Grammar for
Classical Hebrew
(reprint ed.,
don
Press, 1955), p. 76.
2 Matitiahu Tsevat, "The Basic
Meaning of the Biblical Sabbath,"
ZAW 84 (1972) :455.
49
and his demand upon the time
which
were also a means of
remembering the sacred history concerning deliver-
ance from bondage.2
"Take Time to Be Holy" could serve well as the
hymnic theme for
to God because
sabbaths placed the Israelite
in the precarious position of denying the
lordship of Yahweh over his
life.
The
sanctuary reverence (v. 2b)
The
fact that verse 2 is identical to 19:30 provides the inter-
preter with a clue to the
identity of the sanctuary. In the context of
19:30 the "tent of
meeting" (dfvm lhx, v.
21) is mentioned. This
reference to the Tabernacle
demonstrates that it may be included as a
"sanctuary" (wdqm), which it is called in 16:33.3 As
with "sabbaths"
in the first part of this
verse, the first person singular pronominal
suffix is appended to the noun.
As the sabbaths had been identified
with Yahweh, so also the
sanctuary is identified as his. The sanctuary
was not only the appointed
place of meeting for the Israelite, it was
also the location of the
terrestrial manifestation of Yahweh's presence
(cf. 16:7, 18; 19:21,
22--especially the employment of the phrase,
"before Yahweh," hvhy ynpl).
1 Tsevat, "The Basic Meaning of the
Biblical Sabbath," p. 455.
2 Brueggemann, The Land, p. 64. Although Brueggemann states that
the
Sabbath observance was "for honoring land" (ibid.), such a viewpoint
misses
the major emphasis of honoring the land-giver, Yahweh. This does
not
nullify, however, Brueggemann's otherwise noteworthy discussion of
the
centrality of the Sabbath in
3 It should be noted that technically the
"sanctuary" included
both
the "tent of meeting" and the "altar" which sat before its
door.
"Tabernacle"
is used here, therefore, in the broad sense of the tent/
tabernacle
and its grounds--the entire sanctum.
50
An abbreviated
refrain (hvhy ynx "I
am Yahweh") closes verse 2,
serving again to identify the
land-giver, the non-idol, the sabbath-
lord. Observance and reverence
are empty practices without the recog-
nition of Yahweh. Such
recognition must be more than assent. It must
consist of a heart attitude and
a life yielded to his lordship in
every realm (including mind,
space, and time). The commandments of
verses 1-2 "are grounded
in the being of God who is the sole measure of
holiness."1
These precepts are derived "from the one divine will which
called for the sole response of
obedience."2 Thus, the sum of holiness
is obedience. This principle is
universal, transcending both testa-
ments (cf. 1 Sam 15:22 and Jas
1:22). Only with this principle in mind
does the following pericope
(vv. 3-46) have its proper force and correct
interpretation.
Promise (vv. 3-13)
This
section of the pericope is highlighted by promise. How-
ever, the promise is
conditioned upon obedience (v. 3). The promise
consists of blessing (vv. 4-12)
and is grounded in the historical rela-
tionship of Yahweh to the
nation of
The
Prerequisite: Obedience (v. 3)
Verse 3
is the protasis for a conditional sentence which con-
tinues through verse 12. Verses
4-12 comprise the apodosis. Being
more interested in the promise
of Yahweh in verses 4-12, the commentaries
have ignored verse 3 in their
exegetical comments. The verse is of
1 Brevard S. Childs, Introduction to the Old Testament as Scrip-
ture (Philadelphia: Fortress
Press, 1979), p. 185.
2 Ibid., p. 186.
51
major import for at least four
reasons: (1) It is the protasis without
which the lengthy apodosis
cannot be properly contextualized. (2) It
emphasizes the relationship of
employment of hqH "statute" and hvcm "commandment"1 in
positions of
grammatical emphasis (preceding
the verb). (3) It is grammatically
equal to its lengthy
counterpart (though it could be argued that it is
not conceptually or logically
equal since much more space and thought
are given to the apodosis). (4)
The form of the conditional sentence
(the particle Mx "if/when" + the yqtl verb form) indicates a real
(present and/or future,
durative or frequentative) possibility2 for the
apostasy of
presence of casuistic law
(involved in covenant stipulations?) by the
pausal juncture (rather than
contextual juncture) of protasis and
apodosis--indicating objective
(rather than subjective) consequence.3
Yahweh does not allow for
apostasy; he forbids it'.
The two
terms for "law" (hqH and hvcm) are mutually reinforcing
rather than mutually exclusive.
In both terms the emphasis is upon the
sovereign demand of Yahweh. The
study of the two terms as they occur
in Leviticus is instructive.
hqH/tvqH is
employed 26 times in Leviticus (12 singular and 14
plural). The singular is always
used with the qualifying adjective
Mlvf
"everlasting" and is used of individual statutes such as the non-
1 Cf. Georg Braulik, "Die Ausdrucke
fur 'Gesetz' im Buch Deuter-
onomium,"
Bib 51 (1970):53-60.
2 Cf., out of many, Jouon, Grammaire, pp. 513-15 (§167c-h).
3 H. B. Rosen, "The Comparative
Assignment of Certain Hebrew
Tense
Forms," in Proceedings of the
International Conference on Semitic
Studies (
1969),
pp. 217-18.
52
consumption of blood (3:17),
Aaronic sacrificial portions (7:36), non-
consumption of alcoholic
beverages by Aaronic priests on duty in the
sanctuary (10:9), festival
sabbaths (16:29, 31, 34; 23:14, 21, 31, 41),
nonidolatrous sacrifice (17:7),
and the menorah's oil (24:3). The
plural is employed as the
subject or object of a verb, normally with
a pronominal suffix (with the
exception of 18:30 and 20:23, which both
refer to Canaanite customs and
are qualified by terms of derision:
"abominable" and
"heathen"), and refer to the entire Mosaic legal code
(with the exception of 18:3,
30, and 20:23--all referring to the pagan
customs to be avoided by the
Israelites). The only employment of a
pronominal suffix which is not
the first person singular is contained
in 18:3. There the third person
plural refers to the Canaanites. The
first person antecedent is
clearly Yahweh by context. The usual verb
is rmw "keep/observe" (18:4, 5, 26, 30;
19:19, 37; 20:8, 22). How-
ever, jlh "walk" is employed in 18:3; 20:23;
and 26:3 (the first two
of pagan customs, the last of
Yahweh's statutes1). hWf
"do/perform" is
used once (25:18) with hqH as its object although it is often found in
the context of the occurrences
of hqH as a summary statement:
"yea,
you shall do/practice
them" (19:37; 20:8, 22; 25:18; 26:3; cf.
26:15). Twice hqH (in the plural with the first person singular
suffix)
is employed with negative verbs
(sxm)3 "reject,",26:15;
'9 "abhor,"
26:43).
A note
of grammatical interest concerns the employment of verb
forms with relation to the
position of hqH as a
direct object. When
1 "Custom" and
"statute" are not being employed here to imply
some
inherent qualitative distinction within hqH. The English connota-
tion
of "custom" is social whereas the connotation of "statute"
is
legal.
Although the pagan hqH might have been legislated, the hqH of
Yahweh
was definitely legislated.
53
the object is preverbal, the
verb is yqtl (18:4; 19:19; 26:3, 15);
when the object is postverbal,
the verb is qtl (18:5, 26; 19:37;
20:8, 22; 25:18).1 The only exception occurs in 26:43, where
the
verb lfg "abhor" is employed and where special
emphasis is present due
to the nature of the statement
itself.2
hvcm/tvcm occurs
only in the plural in Leviticus (10 times).
It occurs with the qualifying
adjective lk
"all" in 4:2, 13, 22, 27;
5:17; and 26:14. It possesses
the first person singular pronominal
suffix (with Yahweh as
antecedent) in 22:31; 26:3, and 15. The usual
verb employed with hvcm is hWf (4:13,
22, 27; 5:17; 26:14, 15),
though rmw occurs in 22:31 (qtl preceding the direct object) and 26:3
(yqtl following the direct object).
It is
clear from the examination of the usages of hqH and hvcm
in Leviticus, that they both
refer to the entirety of the Mosaic legis-
lation. It is also clear that
26:3 employs unusual verb counterparts
for the two nouns--perhaps as a
means of emphasis rather than mere
variety. The grammatical
presentation is normal for the style of the
author of Leviticus. The
pronominal suffix ties this verse and its
identification with Yahweh to
verse 2 where the same suffix was employed.
The
three verbs of verse 3 are mutually reinforcing. They
emphasize the concept of
obedience. jlh
"walk" emphasizes the totality
of obedience in the various
spheres of life's activities.3 rmw
"keep/
1 See above, p. 48 n. 1.
2 The parallel of lfg, sxm "reject," is
also employed as qtl fol-
lowing
its direct object, Fpwm "judgment."
3 THAT, s.v. "jlh," by G. Sauer,
1:489-90.
54
observe" emphasizes the
root concept of obedience: preserving the com-
mandment by practicing it.1 hWf
"do/perform" is but a generalizing
term drawing the previous two
together in one summary statement. This
third term is expressed by wqtl. This construction introduces
either
a result clause or an
epexegetical clause (perhaps, in the latter case,
with an asseverative force =
"yea" or "indeed"). The resumptive2 Mtx
"them" (i.e., the
previously-mentioned statutes and commandments)
closes the protasis
emphatically--bringing the mind of the reader back
to the precepts and their
source rather than to the recipients and their
obedience. Unless the Israelite
recognized theonomy, he could not
experience promise (including
theophany; cf. v. 12). The legislative
revelation of Sinai did not
supplant the promises to Abraham.
would be responsible for both:
to obey the legislation and to claim
(or, believe) the promise. The
walk of faith involved both the doing
and the claiming (or,
believing).
The Product: Blessing (vv. 4-12)
The
blessings enumerated in the following verses fall into these
categories: productivity (vv.
4-5), peace (v. 6), power (vv. 7-8),
population (v. 9), provision
(v. 10), and presence (vv. 11-12). All
were tied to the land which
These blessings were to be
landed blessings. They would not be experi-
enced in landlessness. The tie
with the land which they had not yet
1 H. Freedman and Simon Maurice, eds., Leviticus, trans.
Slotki,
vol. 4 in Midrash Rabba (London:
Soncino Press, 1961), p. 450.
2 See, P. P. Saydon, "Meanings and Uses
of the Particle tx,"
VT 14 (1964):205. The
employment of tx with the suffix as the pronomi-
nal
object of a verb is especially prominent in the body of literature
of
which Leviticus 26 is a part. This may be due to the desire of Moses,
in
those portions of the Pentateuch, to use "greater distinctness and
precision"
(BDB, p. 85).
55
received points out the
revelatory nature of this pericope. The reve-
lation from Yahweh provided
information which
known otherwise. As such, then,
the pericope has the tone of prophecy.1
This
section of the pericope continues the conditional sentence
by means of a series of
consecutive qtl forms. The apodosis
with the
consecutive qtl was employed in the milieu of
classical Hebrew in the
Mosaic era. Indeed, the Amarna
period provides evidence for the condi-
tional function of wqtl.2 Since the present
context (Lev 26:3-12) is
grammatically characteristic of
wqtl, it would be unnecessary to
clas-
sify wqtl in verses 4-12 as
waw-conversive (or, waw-inversive3) forms.4
The suffix verb forms (qtl) serve here to place greater
emphasis on the
1 See above, p. 3.
2 William L. Moran, "The Hebrew
Language in its Northwest Semitic
Background,"
in The Bible and the Ancient Near East,
ed. G. Ernest
Wright
(reprint ed.,
3 Cf. Jouon, Grammaire, pp. 319-20 ( 117).
4 It is this writer's opinion that there
is no validity to the
designation
"conversive" (or "inversive") since there are no
demonstrable
reasons
for converting (or inverting) the function of a verb form merely
because
of a prefixed waw. Any alteration of
time or logical relation-
ship
is due to the influence of the context alone--whether or not the
waw
is present. The qtl with waw is characteristic of prophetic style
because
of the emphasis on the root concept of the verbs (i.e., the
action
or event itself rather than the order or sequence of actions or
events).
The wyyqtl (lfqy.va) is characteristic of
narrative style due
to
the emphasis on the prefixed particle which designates logical or
sequential
relationship to the context. Cf. J. Wash Watts, A Survey of
Syntax in the Hebrew Old
Testament
(
Publishing
Co., 1964), pp. 53-54, 103-17. The waw
of wyyqtl is best
understood
as an adverb (or, at least, a non-conjunctive particle).
This
concept of the wyyqtl is presented in
a study comparing Egyptian
particle
usage to the Hebrew waw: G. Douglas Young, "The Origin of the
Waw
Conversive," JNES 12
(1953):248-52. Cf., also, GKC, pp. 133 (§49b
n.
1) and 330-31 (§112b n. 2), which calls the term "waw conversive"
a
"superficial description," "old-fashioned," and
"unscientific." See,
also,
Weingreen, Practical Grammar, p. 91;
William D. Barrick, "The
Basic
Verb Forms" (Broomfield, CO: 1978; mimeographed). The Bibli-
ography
of this present study (see below, pp. 215-30) contains additional
sources
for the study of this problem of the Hebrew verbs.
56
root concepts of the individual
verbs rather than on extra-verbal
concepts such as negation,
subject, object, or adverbial phrases may
present.
Productivity
(vv. 4-5)
It is
not without significance that the first wqtl form is
Ntn
"give" in the first person singular. The force of promise is
gift. The source of promise is
the giver. The resumption of the
first person suffix (here on
the verb, previously on nouns) reasserts
the concept behind the dual Selbstvorstellungsformel in verses 1 and
2.
Yahweh is the rain-giver.
The
Palestinian rains came seasonally in October-November
(early) and March-April
(latter). The promise of Yahweh was that
these rains would be a
dependable phenomenon in order that the land
might produce an abundant
harvest: "And I shall give your rains in
their season (tf)." Rashi claimed that the rains would come
at times
when no one needed to travel
(such as the evening before the sabbath).1
Such interpretation is an
example of rabbinic excesses in biblical
interpretation. The same
blessing was promised again in the Pales-
tinian Covenant (Deut 28:12;
cf., also, 11:17 and Ezek 34:26).
As a
direct result of the rain-giver's gift, the land would
yield its gift (lvby Ntn "yield produce") and the trees
would yield
their gift (yrp Ntn "yield fruit"). The triple
employment of Ntn in
this verse emphasizes the
concept of gift. The third occurrence, uti-
lizing yqtl (as opposed to the wqtl of the first two occurrences), is
conducive to inclusion in the
broader second statement. The "trees of
1 dxm tvlvdg tvytvxb
hrvt ywmvH hwmH llvk wmvH
(
Hebrew
Publishing Company, n.d.), p. 134.
57
the field" are included in
"the land." The flow of the concepts in
verse 4 is from general to
specific: "I shall give your rains in their
season so that the land will
yield its produce, yea, the trees of the
field will yield their
fruit."1 The presence of the same juxtaposition
of "the land" and
"trees of the field" in verse 20 and Ezekiel 34:27
may indicate dependence upon
verse 4. Verse 20 may be a contextual
dependence for the purpose of
maintaining continuity. Ezekiel 34:27
may be a prophetic exposition
of the covenant. Such an exposition indi-
cates the parenetic value of
the pericope to the Israelites of Ezekiel's day.
"The
time of threshing" (v'J`i) 2 would extend to the "vintage"
1 Elliger, Leviticus, p. 364, identifies v. 4b as parallelismus
membrorum.
He understands much of vv. 3-12 as poetic parallelism (ibid.,
pp.
364-69). His identifications may be doubtful at times, but the pos-
sibility
of poetic style must not be hastily discounted. According to
McCarthy
(Treaty and Covenant, pp. 176-79 nn.
36, 41-44; 272, 275, 279),
the
poetic literary form is employed in the covenant contexts of Exod
19:3-8
and Deut 28:1-69. He identifies the employment of inclusion,
chiasm,
and parallelism in Deuteronomy 28. Freedman presents an approach
antagonistic
to the identification of poetic form in Leviticus 26. He
observes
that the Hebrew particles tx (sign of the
accusative), rwx
(relative
pronoun), and _h (definite article) occur six to eight times
more
frequently in prose than poetry. The absence or presence of these
particles
is thereby employed in indentifying the two types of literature.
He
admits, however, that there are exceptions and some overlapping. See,
David
Noel Freedman, "Pottery, Poetry, and Prophecy: An Essay on Bibli-
cal
Poetry," in Pottery, Poetry, and
Prophecy: Studies in Early Hebrew
Poetry (Winona Lake:
Eisenbrauns, 1980), pp. 2-3. In Lev 26:3-12 PK
(9x)
and _h
(3x; always with Crx or hdW, in harmony with the
pericope's
emphasis
on landedness) occur. Some striking exceptions to Freedman's
theory
include: Ezek 15:1-8 (tx, 5x; rwx, 2x; _h, 9x); Pss 34 (tx,
4x;
_h,
4x); 103 (tx,
4x; _h,
7x); 105 (tx,
8x; rwx,
3x; _h,
2x) ;
117
(a two-verse psalm; tx, lx; _h, lx); 135 (tx, 5x; rwx, 2x; _h,
3x)
; 146 (tx,
4x; rwx,
lx; _h,
3x); 148 (tx,
4x; rwx,
lx; _h,
7x).
These
examples exhibit high frequencies of occurrence. Many other iso-
lated
examples could be offered as well. Emendation is not the answer
to
the occurrences of these particles in poetry. The literary style of
a
writer is not always as predictable as Freedman implies.
2 Cf. Arnold B. Ehrlich, Mikra Ki-Pheshuto: The Bible According
to Its Literal Meaning, 3 vols., in The Library of Biblical Studies, ed.
Harry
M. Orlinsky (reprint ed.,
1969),
3:241.
58
(rycb) and
the "vintage" would extend to the time of "sowing" (frz).
The spring and early summer
grain harvests (planted in winter) would
last until the harvest of the fruit
crops at the conclusion of the
summer. The fruit crops of late
summer and early fall would continue
to be harvested till the time
of the winter sowing of the grain crops.1
The concept is one of perpetual
harvesting due to bumper crops. A
similar figure is employed in
Amos 9:13 concerning the period of messi-
anic rule.2
The
prepositional phrase Mkl
"for you" (probably a dative of
advantage/benefit) is
significant. The promise is directed to the
obedient Israelites. The
promise of bumper crops (v. 5a), like that
of rain and productivity (v.
4), contains a logical progression. The
repetition of fWn "extend/reach," like that of Ntn in verse 4, is
characterized by an alternation
of verb form from wqtl to yqtl. Such
alternation of verb forms
(especially cognate verbs) may characterize
an elevated prose (or prosaic
poetry?).3 The resumption of wqtl in
verse 5b continues the logical
progression: "therefore, you shall eat."
stuffs) until they were
satisfied (fbW
"satiety/fill/abundance,"4 cf.
25:19).
Another
wqtl presents a further outcome of productivity: "thus
you shall dwell (bwy) securely (HFbl) in
your land." This is the ulti-
1 Cf. Porter, Leviticus, p. 210.
2 Cf. Wolff, Joel and Amos, p. 354.
3 Cf. F. C. Fensham, "The Use of the
Suffix Conjugation and the
Prefix
Conjugation in a Few Old Hebrew Poems," JNSL 6 (1978):9-18.
4 The employment of fbW in a sabbatical context
may be signifi-
cant.
See below, p. 113 n. 2.
59
mate result of the divinely
given productivity. The second occurrence
of Crx with the second masculine plural pronominal
suffix (cf. v. 1)
emphasizes the possession of
the land by the Israelites. The land would
be theirs, not another
nation's. Since the land belonged to them, they
would be accountable for its
use and the manner in which they live in
it. The promise of security
evokes the relationship to the observance
of the sabbatical and jubilee
years in the preceding context (25:18,
19). Such anaphorical usages of
terminology tie chapter 26 closely to
chapter 25--the sabbatical
principle continues to be the leading thought.
Peace
(v. 6)
As
Wenham remarks, "Food without security is of limited value."1
The concept introduced in verse
5 by HFbl "securely" is
resumed here
and developed. The construction
wqtl continues the apodosis which
began in verse 4. It is
noteworthy that this second section commences
with Ntn "give" in the first person singular,
just as verse 4 began.
As Yahweh was the rain-giver,
so, also, he was the peace-giver. The
concept of gift continues to
pervade the context.
That
which was to be given by Yahweh is designated as Mvlw.
The term occurs only here in
Leviticus. The immediate context alone
must determine its meaning. The
concepts of "peace," "wholeness,"
"welfare,"
"recompense," and "reward" are all involved in the semantic
range of Mvlw in the Old Testament.2 The
subsequent context (especially
the phrase dyrHm Nyxv "without anyone making (you)
afraid"3) would
1 Wenham, Leviticus, p. 329.
2 THAT, s.v. "Mlw," by G. Gerleman,
2:919-35.
3 Jouon, Grammaire, p. 488 (g159d).
60
indicate that Mvlw ought to be viewed as the opposite of military
con-
flict due to enemy incursions.1
It cannot be ignored, however, that
"the purpose of the
covenant is to establish Mvlw.2 Perhaps Malachi
2:5 best exemplifies this
relationship: "my covenant was life and
Mvlw for
him." Therefore, though the immediate context defines the
usage as specifically that of
"peace," yet the covenantal context of
the usage draws the attention
of the reader to an even broader range of
which this one specific promise
is but a part.
The
adverbial prepositional phrase describing the location of
the blessing of peace is Crxb "in the land." The blessing is tied
to
the land. Without the land,
there could be no peace for
dyrHm Nyxv Mtbkwv "so that you shall
(might?) lie down without
anyone making (you)
afraid," completes the thought by further explana-
tion of the concept of Mvlw.3 The change to the second person
plural
for the verb draws attention to
the activity of
the gift of Yahweh. The
peace-giver would allow
The
second half of verse 6 reverts to the verb in the first
person singular with Yahweh as
the subject: "and I shall exterminate
1 THAT, s.v. "U'W," by G.
Gerleman, 2:922; Keil and Delitzsch,
Pentateuch,
2:470.
2 Walther Zimmerli, Old Testament Theology in Outline, trans.
David
E. Green (Atlanta: John Knox Press, 1978), p. 49.
3 This continued use of logical
progression to present the bless-
ings
of this pericope demonstrates the care with which this pericope was
composed.
Although there appears to be some evidence for logical paral-
lelism,
it is not strong enough to follow Elliger's identification of
parallelismus
membrorum dogmatically (cf. Elliger, Leviticus,
pp. 364-
69).
This is definitely, however, an elevated style which borders on
the
poetic.
4 BDB, p. 1012.
61
the wild beast from the
land." This promise is not the extermination
of every wild creature, but
rather the extermination of those who would
prey upon
only to the
harmony will exist between
be hindered by the fauna of the
land.
The last phrase of this half of the verse is emphatic in
its
syntactical form: (1) the
subject (brH
"sword") precedes the verb;
(2) the verb form is altered from
the preceding qtl to a yqtl (rbft-xl
"shall not pass
through"); and, (3) Mkcrxb
"in your land" appears to
be involved in a chiasmus which
closes this phrase in the same fashion
that Crxb closed the first phrase in the first half of
the verse (verse
6 thus ends in the same fashion
as verse 5). The alternation of gram-
matical persons from the first
person singular of the first phrases of
both halves of the verse is
consistent: 6a changes to the second per-
son while 6b changes to the third
person. The literary style serves to
emphasize a concept found
elsewhere in covenant contexts: '1)1nn I'M
"none making afraid",
Jeremiah 30:10, 46:27, Ezekiel 34:28, 39:26,
Zephaniah 3:13; (nyn) 7''n
"(wild) beasts," Ezekiel 5:17, 14:15, 21,
34:28, Hosea 2:20 (English,
18); ann "sword," Deuteronomy 28:22, Ezekiel
5:17, 14:17, 21, Hosea 2:20
(English, 18), Amos 4:10. Perhaps the most
fascinating of these parallel
occurrences of the covenant concepts is
Hosea 2:20 (English, 18):
xvhh
Mvyb tyrb Mhl ytrkv
hmdxh Wmrv Mymwh Jvf-Mfv hdWh tyH-Mf
Crxh-Nm rvbwx hmHlmv brHv twqv
:HFbl
Mytbkwhv
1 Cf. Hans Walter Wolff, Hosea, trans. Gary Stansell, ed. Paul D.
Hanson,
in Hermeneia, ed. Frank Moore Cross,
Jr., et al. (
Fortress
Press, 1974), p. 51.
62
"And I shall make a covenant
with them in that day:
with the beast of the field and with
the fowl of the heavens and
with the creeper of the ground;
and bow and sword and battle I shall
break from the land
so that I might cause them to rest
securely."
The Hosean prophecy apparently
draws its imagery from the content of
Leviticus 26:6.1
This is not surprising in the light of the dependence
of the Hebrew prophets on the
covenants of Yahweh with
ticus 26 was evidently the
earliest and most succinct of the Mosaic
statements concerning the
nation's relationship to their land. The
instruction ("parenesis)
concerning landedness was expanded later in
pericopes like Deuteronomy 27-30,
but Leviticus 26 maintained its
privileged position--perhaps
due to its closely knit relationship to
the sabbatical principle
revealed in its preceding context (chapter 25)
and continued in chapter 26.
Power
(vv. 7-8)
Having the security of landed existence promised to them,
the
nation could have confidence in
its ability to meet its foes on the field
of battle. The basis for such
confidence would reside also in the
promise of victory. The
protection from the enemy sword (brH) in
verse 6 is now revealed in a
reverse image: the sword (bRH) of
would take the offensive in
order to put its enemies to rout.
This section commences with the characteristic wqtl: "so you
shall pursue" (Jdr). However, the grammatical person is not the
first
singular which the reader has
grown accustomed to expect at the start
of a section. Instead of the
activity of Yahweh, the activity of
1 Cf. Carl Friedrich Keil, The Twelve Minor Prophets, 2 vols.,
trans.
James Martin, in Biblical Commentary on the
Old Testament (Grand
Rapids:
Wm. B. Eerdmans Publishing Company, 1969), 1:63; Wolff,
Hosea, pp. 50-51.
63
is depicted. It would appear
that these two verses are an expansion
of verse 6. Verse 9 continues
the first person singular concept with
four verbs of the wqtl type--drawing the attention back to
Yahweh in
an impressive fashion.
Little is contained in the commentaries concerning verses
7-8.
The proverbial1 hxm "100" . . . hwmH "5" and hbbr "10,000" . . . hxm
"100" bear some resemblances
to Deuteronomy 32:30 (Jlx dHx
"1,000" and
hbbr
"10, 000" . . Mynw “2”),
Joshua 23:10 (Jlx
"1,000" . . . dHx
"l"),
and Isaiah 30:17 (dHx "1" .
. dHx
Jlx
"1,000" and ??2 . . .HwmH
"5") .
The numerical sequences represented
in these passages present what may
be a pattern:
Lev 26:8 5 against 100 = 1:20 1
100 10,000 = 1:100 5
Deut 32:30 1 against 1,000 = 1:1,000 1
2 10,000 = 1:5,000 5
Josh 23:10 1 against 1,000 = 1:1,000 1
Isa 30:17 1 against 1,000 = 1:1,000 1
5 “ ??
= 1:?? ?
Although a few other examples
of 1:1,000 can be offered (e.g., Judg
15:15, 16; 1 Sam 18:7, 8; Eccl
7:28), these lack the additional
figures which provide a ratio
of 1/5 (1 Sam 18:7, 8 would only present
a 1/10 ratio). It may be
significant that there seem to be no parallels
in extrabiblical literature to
Leviticus 26:8 or Deuteronomy 32:30.3
1 Keil and Delitzsch, Pentateuch, 2:470.
2 The Septuagint inserts polloi< "many."
25,000 would be required
to
obtain a ratio of 1/5. The NIV leans toward the Septuagint by the
translation
"all."
3 I.e., as far as this writer was able to
determine. On the other
hand,
the poetic device of x + (x + 1) has abundant support from extra-
biblical
materials.
64
Therefore, it would be the
better part of wisdom not to identify the
1/5 ratio as a poetic device.1
There
is a logical parallelism within these two verses. It
may be visualized as follows:
:brHl
Mkynpl vlpnv
|| Mkybyx-tx Mtpdrv -7
:brHl
Mkynpl Mkybyx vlpnv || vpdry
hbbr Mkm hxmv |
hxm hWmH mkm vpdrv -8
7-
And you shall pursue your enemies || and they shall fall before you
by the sword;
8-
and five from among you shall pursue one hundred | and one
hundred
from among you shall pursue ten.
thousand, || and your enemies
shall fall before you by the sword.
Several observations may be
made: (1) The verbs employed in the first
and second halves of each verse
are identical (lpn
"fall" || Jdr
"pursue").
(2) The direct object of the
first half of verse 7 (byx
"enemy") is
paralleled by hxm "100" and hbbr "10,000" in verse 8, but is also
repeated in a chiastic pattern
as the subject of the last half of verse
8. (3) The alternation of qtl and yqtl in the first half of verse 8 is
in keeping with the pattern already
discerned in verses 2, 3, 4, 5, and
6, and serves to emphasize the
unity of the two phrases. (4) Mkybyx
"your enemies" in the
last phrase of verse 8 may be understood as a
ballast variant in order to
offset the weight of the first two phrases
of the verse. It also serves to
reiterate the antecedent to the numbers
employed in verse 7.
The
increased productivity of the landed
increased population (according
to the following verse, 9). Verses 7-8
comprise a transition from verses
4-6 to verse 9. This emphasis on pro-
ductivity, however, does not
mean that the increase guarantees victory
l At least until a greater body of
evidence could be presented
from
both biblical and extrabiblical materials.
65
on the field of battle. The
promise to
would be capable of overcoming
the enemies' majority. This could occur
because Yahweh (the land-giver,
the rain-giver, the produce-giver, the
peace-giver) is also the
power/victory-giver. There is no natural
cause (nor human cause) which
could be credited with the promised vic-
tory. The ultimate cause would
be supernatural (and superhuman). The
divine blessing would be the
deciding factor. Yahweh's presence would
determine the outcome.
the deciding factor. Contrary
to humanistic feudalism, landedness is
not power. Landedness for
reliance and other-god-reliance
rather than Yahweh-reliance.1
would have to maintain the
memory of the historically proven fact that
Yahweh +
history was the nation's exodus
from the
Population
(v. 9)
As was
previously mentioned,2 verse 9 is impressive for its
array of verb forms in the
first person singular. The first phrase,
Mkylx
ytynpv
"and I shall turn unto you," is clearly a statement of
beneficence by context and has
been taken as such by all the ancient
versions. The most interesting
of these is that of Targum Ongelos:
Nvkl
xbfyxl yrmymb ynptxv3 "and I shall turn/restore
my word in order
to do good to you." The
second phrase of verse 9 (Mktx ytyrphv
"so
1 Brueggemann, The Land, pp. 53-59.
2 See above, p. 63.
3 Sperber, The Bible in Aramaic, 1:212.
66
that I might make you
fruitful") is best interpreted as the result of
the first. A chiasmus may be
observed in this verse:
Mktx ytyrphv || Mkylx
ytynpv -9a
so
that I might make you and
I shall turn unto you
fruitful
:Mktx
ytyrb-tx ytmyqhv || Mktx
ytybrhv -9b
because I have established/ and I shall multiply you
ratified my covenant with you
"Established/ratified"
(Myqh) might also be understood as
"shall carry
out."1 As in 9a the second
phrase is the result of the first, so, also,
the first phrase of 9b is the
result of the second. Keil and Delitzsch,
however, view 9b as a
non-chiastic parallel to 9a:
The multiplication and fruitfulness of the
nation were a constant
fulfilment of the covenant promise (Gen. xvii.
4-6) and an estab-
lishment of the covenant (Gen. xvii. 7); not
merely the preserva-
tion of it, but the continual realization of the
covenant grace, by
which the covenant itself was carried on further
and further toward
its completion. This was the real purpose of the
blessing, to which
all earthly good, as the pledge of the constant
abode of God in the
midst of His people, simply served as the
foundation.2
There are several reasons for
maintaining the chiastic relationship:
(1) hrp "be fruitful" and hbr "multiply" are a formal combination
found
repeatedly in the Old Testament
(cf. the Hip’il in Gen 17:20, 28:3, 48:4;
and, the Qal in Gen 1:22, 28,
8:17, 9:1, 7, 35:11, 47:27, Exod 1:7, Jer
3:16, 23:3, Ezek 36:11).
Therefore, they should be viewed as corres-
ponding members of the
chiasmus. (2) hrp and hbr both have objects
introduced by tx while hnp "turn" and Mvq "establish" are qualified by
adverbial phrases introduced by
prepositions (lx
"unto" and tx
"with,"
1 Cf. BDB, p. 879. The choice of tense for
the translation at
this
point depends upon the interpretation given to the phrase. See
below,
p. 67.
2 Keil and Delitzsch, Pentateuch, 2:470-71.
67
respectively). Thus, there is a
form of syntactical parallelism.
(3) hrp and hbr exhibit
a phonetic similarity with the liquid r, the
bilabial p and b, and
the guttural final h. This
assonance adds to
the force of the statement. (4)
It appears that the mention of tyrb
"covenant" was
purposefully delayed so as to receive the maximum empha-
sis. Being mentioned last, it
tends to linger in the minds of the
readers. McEvenue states that tyrb Myqh is used "always in the sense
of fulfilling an oath taken
earlier."1 All such occurrences do bear
out his emphasis (cf. Gen 6:18;
9:9, 11, 17; 17:7, 19, 21; Exod
6:4; Deut 8:18; Ezek 16:60,
62). It is also noteworthy that all
occurrences of this
covenant-fulfilling phraseology have Yahweh as
the subject.2 Yahweh
is the covenant-fulfiller. This truth is empha-
sized by the first person
singular in the verbs and by the first per-
son singular pronominal suffix
on tyrb ("my covenant").
The
increase in
the covenant with Abraham (cf.
Gen 17:6). The phrase tyrb Myqh is
also
associated with the Abrahamic
Covenant (cf. Gen 17:7, 19, 21; also,
Exod 6:4 and Deut 8:18). It
seems reasonable, in the light of this
evidence, to see in Leviticus
26:9 a reference to the Abrahamic Covenant
of Genesis 17. This has been
observed by Norbert Lohf ink and linked to
a theological theme in the
Priestly materials.3 While agreeing that
1 Sean E. McEvenue, The Narrative Style of the Priestly Writer,
AnBib
50 (Rome: Biblical Institute Press, 1971), p. 74. Cf. Elliger,
Leviticus,
p. 374 n. 17.
2 2 Kgs 23:3 and Jer 34:18 have man as the
subject of f'77, but
the
object is tyrbh yrbd "the words of the covenant."
3
Norbert Lohfink, "Die Abanderung der Theologie des priester-
lichen
Geschichtswerks im Segen des Heiligkeitsgesetzes: zu Lev.
26,9.11-13,"
in Wort and Geschichte: Festschrift fur
Karl Elliger zum
68
Leviticus 26:9 is a reflection
of the Abrahamic Covenant, this writer
chooses not to identify the
theme with a secondary hand. Rather, it
seems far more consistent with
the Pentateuchal materials to consider
them as purely mosaic with
regard to authorship. The significance of
the Abrahamic Covenant is
obvious to any reader of the Old and New
Testaments. There is no reason
to impute its mention to a subsequent
editor who, due to an exilic or
post-exilic position in time, chose to
insert Abrahamic promises of
prosperity/hope/landedness into texts
related to the mosaic Covenant.1
Moses was quite able to reveal cove-
nant-promise as well as
covenant-law. The hope of Abraham was surely
conveyed faithfully to his
descendants. Moses was both a descendant of
Abraham and a minister of the
Abrahamic Covenant (Exod 6:2-8) before he
was a recipient of the Sinaitic
Covenant.
Leviticus
26:9 may be employed as an example of the distinctions
made in this pericope
concerning the Mosaic and Abrahamic covenants.
The Mosaic Covenant is
characterized by the following: (1) The theme
of law. (2) The emphasis on
human responsibility. (3) The elements
of sabbath, sanctuary, and
divine sovereignty. On the other hand, the
Abrahamic Covenant is
characterized by different features: (1) The
theme of promise. (2) The
emphasis on divine fulfillment. (3) The
elements of land, prosperity,
and blessing and/or cursing. Verse 9,
being placed in the midst of Mosaic
Covenant materials, is distinct in
its features. It is Abrahamic
in vocabulary, phraseology, and theme.
Its message to the Israelites
was pertinent to the brief span of time
70. Geburtstag, hrsg. Hartmut Gese and
Hans Peter Ruger, AOAT 18 (Neu-
kirchen-Vluyn:
Neukirchener Verlag, 1973), pp. 131-36.
1 The secondary hand theory is proposed by
all the recent books
written
on the subject of exile theology. See above, p. 11 n. 3.
69
immediately following the
revealing of the Mosaic Covenant on
In effect, the message was: The
newly presented revelation concerning
law is equal in authority to
the older revelation concerning promise.
if
legislation of Moses. The
legislation would not nullify the promise
(cf. Gal 3:17). The legislation
would provide the opportunity to give
outward evidence of the inward
faith in the Abrahamic promises. In
other words, the. Mosaic
Covenant would be the program by which
would manifest its faith by its
works (cf. Jas 2:14-26).
The
population increase promised in this section of the pericope
would also be a blessing in the
Palestinian Covenant forty years later
(Deut 28:4, 11). It is
significant, however, that Deuteronomy 27-30
does not contain either the
combination hbr || hrp or the phrase Tyrb
Myqh.
The concept is there, but not
the phraseology. This would seem to indi-
cate mere similarity and not
identity. It could also indicate a purpose-
ful avoidance of terminology in
the Palestinian Covenant which was the
earmark of the Abrahamic
Covenant.1
Provision
(v. 10)
As in
verse 7, verse 10 begins with a wqtl
form in the second
person plural: Mtlkxv "so you shall eat." The break in the
first per-
son singular seems, therefore,
to indicate that verse 10 is explanatory
to verse 9. That which
1 The interpretation of Rashi is
interesting. He identified the
covenant
in v. 9 as "a new covenant not like the former covenant which
you
breached" (htvx Mtrphw hnvwxrh tyrbk xl hwdH tyrb). wmvH,
p.
135. Such rabbinic references to a new
covenant seem to be motivated by a
concept
of nullification of each preceding covenant by the granting of
another
covenant. Paul clearly disagreed with such an interpretation
of
the old Testament covenants (Gal 3:17).
70
old harvest/store which has
become stale." In this cognate construc-
tion the adjective Nwy "old" serves as a substantive. Of the
eight times
where the adjective occurs in
the old Testament, four are in Leviticus
25-26. Leviticus 25:22 is
obviously related to the concept in 26:10 by
way of the sabbatical
principle:
and when you should say, "How will we eat
in the seventh year if
we do not sow nor gather our increase?", then
I shall command my
blessing for you in the sixth year so that it
shall produce increase
for three years. Thus you shall sow the eighth
year and you shall
eat from the old increase until the ninth
year--until the coming of
its increase you shall eat the old (25:20-22).
The former harvest would
provide such an abundance that it would be
eaten for a long time. It would
last even into the next harvest period.
In fact,
room for the new harvest which
would be great enough to require all
storage space: "and you
shall clear out the old because of the new"
(vxycvt
wdH ynpm Nwyv). The alternation of verb forms in verse 10 (qtl
of lkx to yqtl
of xcy) is consistent with the style
exhibited in this
pericope. It demonstrates the
unity of the verse. The inversion of
the placement of Nwy from the first half to the second half of the
verse indicates its centrality
to the theme of the verse. This verse
presents the manna theme all
over again: when the manna was gathered
in abundance, the remainder
grew stale and was replaced by the next
day's supply of fresh manna
(cf. Exod 16:4-36). In fact, the manna was
also related to the sabbatical
principle (cf. Exod 16:21-30). Yahweh
provided an abundance on the
sixth day so that there would be no need
on the seventh day. Just as he
had promised to provide manna on the
sixth day for the seventh day,
so Yahweh promised to provide in the
sixth year what
Verse
10 is best connected with verse 9 rather than verse 5 since
71
an increased population
requires an increased food supply. Even though
the population of
vision of Yahweh would always meet
their needs. Indeed, there would be
an abundance evidenced by the
remains of the old harvest when each new
harvest would be brought into
storage. Yahweh did not promise produc-
tivity in the field (v. 5) and
then proceed to nullify the prosperity
by a subsequent increase in
population (v. 9). The prosperity would
continue at a rate commensurate
with the population explosion. The
manna-giver would always be
abreast of the needs of his people. The
promise-giver would never
nullify one promise by the giving of another
promise. The land-giver would
give to
exhausted even though they
would increase in numbers. When the sabbath
days and the sabbath years came
around, the increased population could
not be employed as an excuse
for non-observance. Yahweh does not
demand that for which hi grace
does not supply. The will of God will
never lead where the grace of
God cannot keep!
Presence
(vv. 11-12)
The
final section of promise commences with the expected wqtl
in the first person singular: yttnv "and I shall give" (cf. vv. 4 and
6).1 The rain-giver
and peace-giver is now presented as the presence-
granter. Nkwm does
not appear to be a technical reference to the taber-
nacle or temple, but is a
non-technical reference to an "abode" or
"dwelling place."2
Thus, the promise consists of Yahweh's abiding in
1 See above, pp. 56, 59.
2 Cf. Menahem
An Inquiry into the
Character of Cult Phenomena and the Historical Setting
of the Priestly School (Oxford: Clarendon
Press, 1978), p. 14 n. 3.
72
the midst (jvtb) of
gift (Ntn) . The conditional nature of the context (cf.
"if," v. 3) does not nullify the
concept of gift. The presence
of Yahweh would not be earned or merited. From the
divine perspective, the
presence was an unconditional reality of the fulfillment of
covenant promise. From the
human perspective, the promise was commensurate
with the obedience of covenant
stipulations.1 The alternation of verb forms
continues in this verse: qtl of Ntn and yqtl of lfg
"despise."2 "My soul shall not
despise you" is roughly
equivalent to (or, is the cause of) "I shall grant my abode
in your midst."
The
drought and famine of Jeremiah 14 is described in terms
familiar to the reader of
Leviticus 26:
Have you completely rejected
look for peace (MVLW), but there is nothing
good; and for a time
of healing, but, behold, dismay'. We
acknowledge, 0 Yahweh, our
wickedness--the iniquity of our fathers--because
we have sinned
against you. Do not spurn us, for your name's
sake. Do not treat
the throne of your glory with contempt. Remember!
Do not breach
your covenant with us (vntx
jtyrb = Mktx
ytyrb). Is
there any
among the empty ones of the nations who can
cause rain (Mwg); or
will the heavens grant (Ntn) showers? Aren't you
the one (lit.,
he), O Yahweh our God? Therefore, we will wait
for you because
you yourself produce all these things (Jer
14:19-22).3
The principles of
promise/punishment revealed in Leviticus 26 manifest
themselves in the history of
later
1 The distinction of conditional and
unconditional covenants in
biblical
theology is a matter of perspective or semantics more than of
biblical
statement. In this writer's opinion, all biblical covenants
may
be considered unconditional from the divine perspective and condi-
tional
from the human perspective.
2 This alternation deserves a complete
study throughout the Penta-
teuch
in order to determine whether it is a characteristic of Mosaic
literary
style. Its relationship to covenant literary form also needs
to
be researched with care.
3 Many other parallels between Jeremiah 14
and Leviticus 26 may
be
offered: Jer 14:4-6/Lev 26:4; Jer 14:12/Lev 26:25-26; Jer 14:13/
73
and peace. The sense of
Yahweh's rejection (despising) of the nation
was evidence of the loss of the
divine presence. The covenant had been
breached because of the nations
disloyalty. They had sinned against
Yahweh in the same fashion as
their ancestors. Leviticus recorded the
revelation of the principle;
Jeremiah recorded an application.
Verse
12 continues the statement of Yahweh's presence: "Thus
I shall walk in your midst so
that I shall be your god and you your-
selves shall be my
people." The logical development is carefully
structured as in previous
verses:
Mkkvtb ytklhthv -12a = Mkkvtb ynkwm yttnv -11a
"thus
i shall walk in your midst" = "and
I shall grant my dwelling place
in your midst"
Myhlxl Mkl ytyyhv-12b = Mktx ywpn lfgt-xlv
-11b
Mfl
yl-vyht Mtxv
"so that I shall be your god = "and my soul shall not despise
you"
and you yourselves shall be my
people"
Several observations may be
made concerning the structure of these two
verses: (1) Verse 11 has a
complete correspondence of terms (though
not of equivalent syntax): lfgt-xlv | yttnv, ywpn | ynkwm, Mktx | Mkkvtb.
(2) Mkkvtb "in your midst" concludes both 11a
and 12a. This emphasizes
the relationship which the
divine presence has to the nation. (3) The
conceptual equivalent of ynkwm yttn "I shall grant my dwelling place"
is ytklhth "I shall walk." This supports
the conclusion that the mean-
ing of Nkwm is non-technical. It is a reference to Yahweh's
dwelling
among the people in general.
The dwelling is not being limited to a
particular geographic location
(such as the tabernacle or temple).
Lev
26:6-7; Jer 14:15/Lev 26:25-26; Jer 14:19/Lev 26:44; Jer 14:20/
Lev
26:39; Jer 14:21/Lev 26:42, 44; Jer 14:22/Lev 26:1, 2, 12, 13,
44,
45.
74
(4) As lib is the basis for
11a, so 12b is the basis for 12a. Yahweh's
presence would be based upon an
identification by Yahweh with his people
and his people with him. (5)
The common alternation of verb forms occurs
in 12b. Therefore, 12ba and
12bs are a single concept. Yahweh being
the god of
of Yahweh. (6) 12bb employs the prepositive emphatic personal
pronoun
(Mtx
"you") to designate the subject of the verb. This emphasizes
those addressed by Yahweh by
expanding the second person masculine
plural pronominal suffix (Mk_) employed in all four of the previous
phrases in verses 11-12. Thus,
the last two verses of the promise sec-
tion leave the reader with the
distinct impression that the nation of
other people. They alone are
the covenant people. They alone are to
be the landed people. Yahweh's
land grant to them is unique. They
alone are the receivers of all
which comes from the giver.
One
more aspect of the interpretation of verses 11-12 must be
discussed before this analysis
proceeds further: that of the New Testa-
ment quotation of this passage
in 2 Corinthians 6:16. The introductory
formula in 2 Corinthians 6:16
is a hapax phainomenon in the New
Testa-
ment and in the Septuagint.1
However, there does appear to be a rough
equivalent to kaqw>j ei#pen o[ qeo>j o!ti "even as/which also God has said"
in the Qumran Zadokite Document
(or, Damascus Rule): lx rmx rwx "which/
of which God has said"
(vi.13 and viii.9).2 In the two
1 J. de Waard, A Comparative Study of the Old Testament Text in
the Dead Sea Scrolls and
in the New Testament,
STDJ 4 (
Wm.
B. Eerdmans, 1966), p. 16.
2 Ibid. Cf. Eduard Lohse, hrsg., Die Texte aus
kritisch
durchgesehene and erganzte Auf lage, Mtinchen: Kosel-Verlag,
1971),
pp. 78-79, 82-83.
75
the first refers to a quotation
of Malachi 1:10 which has been slightly
altered (primarily in
grammatical person) to fit the application intended
and the second refers to part
of Deuteronomy 32:33, which has not been
altered. Malachi 1:10 was
interpreted literally and contextually;
Deuteronomy 32:33 was
interpreted allegorically though maintaining the
proper contextual reference (to
rebellious covenant people). The intro-
ductory formula, therefore,
does not yield itself to an identification
with a specific type of
quotation (even if it is associated with the
The quotation is as follows:
]Enoikh<sw
e]n au]toi?j kai> e]nperipath<sw,
kai>
e@somai au]tw?n qeo<j, kai> au]toi> e@sontai mou lao<j.
I shall dwell among them
and walk among (them),
and I shall be their
god, and they themselves shall be
my people.
The second part of this
quotation is clearly identical to the Hebrew of
Leviticus 26:12b. Even the
order of the possessive pronouns is consist-
ent: preceding the noun which
they modify (just like Mkl and yl in the
MT of Lev 26:12b). The pronouns
are altered to the third person plural
in the New Testament due to the
writer's different point of reference.
]Enperipath<sw
differs from the MT only in the omission of the pronominal
object concept (which may be
supplied by ad sensum agreement with
the
immediate context). The problem
arises from e]noikh<sw e]n au]toi?j. This
is obviously intended as the
equivalent of Leviticus 26:11a (yttnv
Mkkvtb
ynkwm). The Septuagint offers a variant reading: kai> qh<sw th>n
diaqh<khn
mou e]n u[mi?n "and I shall establish/set my covenant
among you."
Reasons for the state of the
Septuagint text have already been discussed.1
1 See above, pp. 24-25.
75
the first refers to a quotation
of Malachi 1:10 which has been slightly
altered (primarily in
grammatical person) to fit the application intended
and the second refers to part
of Deuteronomy 32:33, which has not been
altered. Malachi 1:10 was
interpreted literally and contextually;
Deuteronomy 32:33 was
interpreted allegorically though maintaining the
proper contextual reference (to
rebellious covenant people). The intro-
ductory formula, therefore,
does not yield itself to an identification
with a specific type of
quotation (even if it is associated with the
The
quotation is as follows:
]Enoikh<sw e]n
au]toi?j kai> e]nperipath<sw,
kai> e@somai au]tw?n
qeo<j, kai> au]toi> e@sontai mou lao<j.
I shall dwell among them and walk among (them),
and I shall be their god, and they themselves
shall be
my people.
The second part of this
quotation is clearly identical to the Hebrew of
Leviticus 26:12b. Even the
order of the possessive pronouns is consist-
ent: preceding the noun which
they modify (just like Mkl and yl in the
MT of Lev 26:12b). The pronouns
are altered to the third person plural
in the New Testament due to the
writer's different point of reference.
]Enperipath<sw
differs from the MT only in the omission of the pronominal
object concept (which may be
supplied by ad sensum agreement with
the
immediate context). The problem
arises from e]noikh<sw e]n au]toi?j. This
is obviously intended as the
equivalent of Leviticus 26:11a (yttnv
Mkkvtb
ynkwm).
The Septuagint offers a variant reading: kai> qh<sw th>n
diaqh<khn
mou e]n u[mi?n "and I shall establish/set my covenant among
you."
Reasons for the state of the
Septuagint text have already been discussed.1
1 See above, pp. 24-25.
76
The MT need not be altered. The
cause of the New Testament paraphrase
of Leviticus 26:11a may be
found either in Paul's translation technique
or merely in his utilization of
a conceptual equivalent for the Hebrew
phrase. This writer believes
that the latter suggestion has the most
support. First, the clear
emphasis of Paul's use of Leviticus 26:11-12
is the concept of
identification with God in 12b. The omission of llb
is a clue to Paul's intention. That
phrase (in llb) does not serve any
purpose in Paul's current
discussion in 2 Corinthians 6. Since Levi-
ticus 26:11b is omitted, it
would not be surprising to find, therefore,
that Paul only paraphrased lla
in order to include the concept rather
than the quotation. Having
established the concept and the context,
Paul proceeded to quote
verbatim 12b. (This explanation would also
provide a reason for the
ellipsis of the pronominal object of e]nperipa-
th<sw.) The
elaborate discussions of conflation of old Testament texts,
"pearl stringing,"
pre-Pauline usage, and of 4Q LXX Leva are made
unnecessary by the simple
reading of the New Testament text alongside
the MT.1
In the
preceding discussion of verses 4-12 the concept of gift
has surfaced repeatedly. The
constant repetition of the first person
singular has also emphasized
the identity of the giver. While compar-
ing Ezekiel 34:25-30 to
Leviticus 26:3-13, Klein makes the observation:
"the blessings according
to Leviticus are responses to human obedience;
1 Cf. de Waard, Comparative Study, pp. 16-17; Richard N. Longe-
necker,
Biblical Exegesis in the Apostolic Period
(
Eerdmans
Publishing Co., 1975), pp. 112, 115, 116, 130. It is this
writer's
opinion that there is much work to be done in the study of the
New
Testament usage of the Old Testament. This is especially true since
current
studies seem to overlook the plain sense of scripture, compara-
tive
syntax, and translation techniques.
77
in Ezekiel's monergistic theology
they are free gifts of God."1 This
is an overdrawn comparison. Not
only does Klein miss the emphasis on
gift in Leviticus 26, he also
misses the indications of human responsi-
bility in Ezekiel 34 (e.g., v.
22: "and I shall judge between sheep
and sheep"). The obedient
nation is the recipient of divine blessing
in both Leviticus and Ezekiel.
The disobedient nation likewise is the
recipient of divine cursing in
both books. Divine monergism is undeni-
able throughout scripture when
man is viewed as the undeserving recipi-
ent of divine grace. There is
no synergism. Faith on the part of
mencement of divine covenant.
Although
it must be admitted that
blessings in their perfection,2
it must be emphasized that they did
receive at least a partial
fulfillment on both individual and national
levels. The same degree of
fulfillment was also manifested concerning
the cursings. The emphasis of
the covenant was on the national involve-
ment. Thus, the constant
emphasis may be observed with regard to the
land. The concept in verse 12
of "my people" is evidence of the cor-
porate emphasis. The blessings
and cursings of the covenant documents
aimed at the total benefit or
total destruction "of the offender, all
he is and all he has."3
These formulas are "not limited to the vassal
1 Klein,
2 Cf. Ramban
(Nachmanides) Commentary on the Torah, 5 vols.,
trans.
Charles B. Chavel (New York: Shilo Publishing House, Inc., 1974),
3:458-65;
and, tvlvdf tvxrqm, loc. cit. Ramban also emphasizes the
miraculous
in the blessings. They were not natural, but supernatural.
His
total argument is for an eschatological fulfillment nationally but
an
immediate fulfillment individually.
3 Hillers, Covenant, p. 38.
78
king but is spread, in widening
circles, over his wife and children, to
the third generation, his
possessions and his country"1 in keeping with
the ancient near eastern
milieu. Since the covenant context of Leviti-
cus 26:4-12 has been
established as involving both the Abrahamic (as in
v. 9) and Mosaic (as in vv.
1-3) covenants, both the eschatological
and the immediate fulfillments
may be identified. The eschatological
are especially evident in
relation to the Abrahamic Covenant. The
immediate are particularly
evident with respect to the Mosaic Covenant.
These two emphases may be
observed both in the immediate context of
Leviticus 26 historically and
in the later pronouncements of the proph-
ets of
The
closing statement of Leviticus 26:4-12 concerning the divine
presence serves to reemphasize
the covenantal concept in this passage.
It is found primarily in
Jeremiah and Ezekiel,2 but is found also in
Exodus 6:7 (its first full
occurrence) and Deuteronomy 29:12 (a Pales-
tinian Covenant occurrence).
Significant uses of Myhlxl hyh
include
Leviticus 11:45; 22:33; 25:38;
26:45; Genesis 17:7, 8; and, Deuter-
onomy 26:17. Mfl
hyh
is especially noteworthy in Deuteronomy 26:18 and
27:9. All the blessings are
related to the identification with Yahweh
and his identification with his
people by means of his presence among
them. It was the centrality of
this truth which led Paul to employ it
in a New Testament context emphasizing
the identification of the New
1 Ibid. Cf. the writer's "Amos and
the Palestinian Covenant"
(unpublished
research paper, Grace Theological Seminary,
IN,
1976) for a fuller discussion of national vs. individual blessing
and
cursing in the covenant relationship.
2 Elliger, Leviticus, p. 374 n. 22; Raitt, Theology
of Exile,
pp.
169-70.
79
Testament believer with his God
(2 Cor 6:14-7:1). Thus, this core-
truth remains central even
today for those who would be identified with
God and his Messiah.
The
Premise: Yahweh's Salvation (v. 13)
The Selbstvorstellungsformel of this verse
is more elaborate than
those previously found in this
pericope.l Mkyhlx hvhy ynx “I am Yahweh
your god" is identical to
the Selbstvorstellungsforrnel of
verse 2. How-
ever, the addition of the heilsgeschichtliche Formulierung
("salvation-
history formula"), Myrcm Crxm Mktx ytxcvh rwx "who brought you
out of
the
had been specifically emphasized
in Leviticus 25 as a basis for the obe-
dience of
The common deliverance from
fiable entity with the
identical roots. The land-giver was first the
deliverer. The land-receivers
were joint-recipients of the promises of
the covenant. As participants
in the covenant, they must never perceive
their land "in a social or
historical vacuum."2 The exodus-causer pro-
vided them with a common social
and historical identity so that their
landedness could be kept in the
proper perspective, the Yahweh-perspec-
tive: his gift, his authority,
his presence, his people.
The
following phrase employs Nm with
the infinitive to express
a negative consequence:3
Mydbr Mhl tyhm,1n
"so that (you) would not be
their servants." The
antithesis to this phrase is clearly that of
1 See above, pp. 47, 50.
2 Brueggemann, The Land, p. 67 (cf. pp. 47-70).
3 Jouon, Grammaire, p. 521 (§169h).
80
verse 12: Mfl yl-Nyht Mtxv "and you yourselves shall
be my people."
This is the only time that this
phrase is employed in the entire old
Testament. A similar phrase
(likewise connected with the Selbstvor-
stellungsformel/Heilsgeschichtsformel)
appears in Exodus 20:2=Deuteronomy
5:6, Mydbf tybm Myrcm Crxm jytxcvh rwx jyhlx hvhy yknx
"I am
Yahweh your god who brought you
out from the
servitude." In the
contexts of Exodus 20:2 and Deuteronomy 5:6 the formula
is utilized in the promulgation
of the Decalogue. As such, it has
Sinaitic overtones as far as a
covenant is concerned. The Heilsge-
schichtsformel may
exhibit a result of the Abrahamic Covenant (cf. Gen
15:13-14), but it is the basis
for the Mosaic Covenant (cf. Exod 19:4).
Two wyyqtl forms are employed in the last
section of this
verse: rbwxv "and I broke" and jlvxv "and I brought out." These forms
are characteristic of
historical narrative.1 The historical tone of
the Heilsgeschichtsformel is undergirded, therefore, by the author's
introduction of these forms
into a pericope where they are rare. The
historical reality of the
exodus from
essential. Yahweh delivered
would not allow them to stand
freely upright.
lf tFm "bars of the yoke" is a phrase found
only here and in
Ezekiel 34:27. Both verses also
speak of the breaking (rbw) of
those
bars. The picture is that of
"poles which are laid upon the necks of
beasts of burden (Jer. xxvii. 2)
as a yoke, to bend their necks and
harness them for work."2 tvymmvq is a
substantive serving as an adver-
1 GKC, p. 326 (§111a). it is noteworthy
that Elliger (Leviticus,
pp.
364, 366-67) omits any reference to v. 13 as poetic parallelism.
2 Keil and Delitzsch, Pentateuch, 2:471.
81
bial accusative of manner:
"upright."1 As the yoke was a symbol of
bondage, so the upright walk
was a symbol of freedom from bondage.2
Thus, the elaboration of the Heilsgeschichtsformel by unusual phrases3
stamps Yahweh's seal of
approval upon the promises to be granted for
obedience to the divine
precepts.4
The
Summary of Verses 3-13
Form
Due to
the relationship of verses 6-8 and 9-10, together with
the independent nature of
verses 3 and 13, the following outline of
this section of the pericope
emerges:
1. Precept (vv. 1-2)
2. Promise (vv. 3-13)
2.1 - Prerequisite:
Obedience (v. 3)
2.2 - Product: Blessing
(vv. 4-12)
2.21 - Productivity (vv.
4-5)
2.22 - Peace (vv. 6-8)
2.23 - Population (vv.
9-10)
2.24 - Presence (vv.
11-12)
2.3 -
Premise: Yahweh's Salvation (v. 13)
The
attempt of Elliger to classify most of verses 1-13 as poetic
parallelism may stimulate
further research regarding the features of
1 Ibid.; Jouon, Grammaire, p. 379 (§126d); GKC, p. 375 (§118q).
2 Targum Onqelos translated tvymmvq with tvryH "liberty," a
ren-
dering
already employed for rvrd "liberty/release/emancipation" in
25:10.
Targum
Neophyti I offers a full paraphrase: yyrcmd Nvhydvbfw
ryn tyrbtv
hpyqz [hmvqb] Nvkty
tyrbdv hlzrp yrn jyh Nvkylf ywq hvhd Nvkyvvkyfm
"and
I broke the yoke of the Egyptian servitude from upon you, that which was
difficult
for you like a yoke of iron, and I led you with erect stature"
(Macho,
Neophyti I, 3:195).
3 tvymmvq is a hapax legomenon.
4 Elliger, Leviticus, p. 374: "Die ausgeffurte Heilsgeschichts-
formel
. . . druckt Jahwes Siegel unter die Verheissung des Lohnes, der
auf
dem Halten der Gebote steht."
82
Hebrew poetry.1 It
is unquestionable that this section of the pericope
does exhibit an elevated
literary style. Proverbial use of numbers
(v. 8), chiasmus (v. 9),
inclusion (vv. 1, 2, 13), and several carefully
developed examples of logical
progression (e.g., vv. 4, 7-8, 11-12) all
occur in this section. The
alternation of prefix (yqtl) and
suffix
(qtl) verb forms is obviously a stylistic feature of the pericope.
It
may not argue for poetry, but
it certainly contributes to the high
literary form of the pericope.
The intrusion of the wyyqtl forms in
verse 13 break the flow of the
pericope at the most conducive point:
the salvation-history formula.
The author of the pericope is captivat-
ing in his literary style.
There is predictability in his employment
of verb forms, in the
commencing of sections with yttnv (vv.
4, 6, and
11), and in his repetition of
key words (vv. 4, 5, 6, 7-8, 10, and 12).
There is also an element of
surprise in the manner in which he does
the unexpected (e.g., the
abbreviated Selbstvorstellungsformel
in v. 2,
the resumptive tx in v. 3, the insertion of Abrahamic Covenant
phrase-
ology in v. 9, the emphatic
personal pronoun in v. 12ba, and the employ-
ment of wyyqtl forms and hapax
legomena in v. 13). This writer cannot
help but think of Acts 7:22,
"Moses was instructed in all the wisdom of
the Egyptians and was powerful
with words."
Aim2
Prior
to the departure of
Yahweh sought to establish a
summation of the nation's relationship to
1 See above, p. 57 n. 1.
2 This division of the study in hand was inspired
by the excel-
lent
arrangement of the Hermeneia
commentaries. The significance of a
pericope
in scripture is best seen in the light of what the author pur-
posed
to accomplish by it.
83
him. Their relationship to
Yahweh involved the past (Abrahamic Cove-
nant), the present (Mosaic
Covenant), and the future (Palestinian Cove-
nant). The summation opens with
a condensed version of the Decalogue:
Observe Yahweh's deity: idol
worship is forbidden; and, observe Yah-
weh's lordship: preserve the
sabbatical principles and the sanctuary
(vv. 1-2). The present covenant
(which had been presented to them just
a month or two prior) was thus
brought to the attention of the nation.
The following conditional
statement (vv. 3-12) was based upon this
covenant relationship above all
others (v. 3).
In
verses 4-12 the concepts of covenant relate to the land, a
theme emphasized more in the
Abrahamic past and looking, by way of pre-
view, to the Palestinian
future. Verse 9 was designed especially to
remind the people of their
Abrahamic heritage since its terminology was
limited to that context. The
few parallels (terminologically) to Deuter-
onomy 27-30 were but a lead-in
to the more extensive parallels later in
the pericope. The future in the
blessings is tantalizingly faint. Per-
haps the faintness emphasized
the present responsibility to obey Yahweh
under the terms of the current
covenant.
An
attitude toward Yahweh is carefully developed by the state-
ments of promise. Obedience
must be real. Obedience must be voluntary
and sincere. Such obedience
comes from realizing the true nature of
Yahweh and of
land-giver, the rain-giver, the
produce-giver, the peace-giver, the
power-source, and the
presence-granter.
land, and prosperity were from
Yahweh alone. Their national identity
was not of their own making.
Their exodus from
own power. Their reception of
the land would not be their own gain.
84
Their landed prosperity would
not be their own product. Therefore,
all they were and possessed
were from God. All they had belonged to
God. They were not their own;
they were purchased by the price of the
exodus. Their liberty from
gation. Their landedness would
be another means of identifying with
the historical presence of
Yahweh and of confirming the reality of the
covenant relationship.
In the
long years of wandering in the wilderness, these truths
would serve to direct the
nation toward the fulfillment of landedness.
Those years of landlessness
would be filled with the pursuit of promise.
Such hope would be founded upon
their memory of past history (v. 13).
That memory would remind them of
the nature of their national identity.
It would also comfort them with
the thought that Yahweh's purpose in
causing the exodus was not
fulfilled at Sinai. Sinai was but the com-
mencement.
In a
nutshell, verses 1-13 provided
the new covenant of law (the
Mosaic) had not nullified the old covenant
of promise (the Abrahamic).
Both were authoritative (cf. Paul's use of
derivatives of xupow "make
valid/confirm/ratify" in Gal 3:17). The
authority of precept (Mosaic
legislation, Lev 26:1-3) did not conflict
with the authority of promise
(Abrahamic gift, vv. 4-12). In addition,
both are consistent with the
authority of history (v. 13). The harmony
is due to the author of all
three:
nants were now embodied in the
corpus of revelation entrusted to
precept. That obedience would
be the avenue of receiving the promise.
85
Penalty, (vv. 14-45)
Most of
Leviticus 26 is taken up with the concept of the curse.
cursings are the just
retribution for disloyalty. In verses 14-15
the reason for retribution is
established as disobedience to the cove-
nant stipulations of Yahweh.
Verses 16-38 unfold the retribution in
five stages. Each stage seems
to be complete in itself. Each allows
the chastised community (or
individual) to return to the paths of obe-
dience. The purpose of this
retribution is restoration. "
is not a God of vengeance, but
a God of didactic love."1 Yahweh uti-
lized retribution/chastisement
to instruct his covenant people regard-
ing their covenant obligations.
Because he loved them (an evidence of
their election to the covenant
relationship, Deut 7:6-8), Yahweh would
punish them for their rebellion
against the legislation of his covenant
(cf. Heb 12:6-11). The final
group of verses in this section (vv. 39-
45) reveal the prospect of
covenant retribution: repentance.
The
Cause: Disobedience (vv. 14-15)
As with
the conditional form in verse 3, Mx + yqtl in verse 14
presents the concept of a real
possibility.2 The casuistic form of
legislation is carried over
from verse 3. Here it is negative; there
it was positive. Here there is
the potential of disobedience; there
there was the potential for
obedience.
yl vfmwt xl-Mxv "and if you do not listen
to me (or, obey me)"
does not have an equivalent
positive statement in verse 3. The full
1 Elliger, Leviticus, p. 374: "Israels Gott ist kein Gott der
Rache,
sondern ein Gott der erziehenden Liebe."
2 See above, p. 51.
86
effect of the first person
singular in verses 1-13 (especially in the
Selbstvorstellungsformel) is
exemplified in this first phrase: as
obedience to Yahweh's law was
obedience to Yahweh, so disobedience to
Yahweh's law was disobedience
to Yahweh. As the first major section of
the pericope presented the
concept of Yahweh's sovereignty by forbidding
idols (v. 1), so the second
major section manifests the same concept by
focusing on the ultimate target
of disloyalty: Yahweh.
The
second phrase of verse 14 is a conflation of verse 3bc:
hlxh
tvcmh-lk tx vWft xlv "so that you do not perform/practice all
these
commandments." There is no
repetition of Mx
"if." The syntax seems to
indicate a consecutive concept
of result or epexegesis. The two phrases
complement each other--not as
two separate "sins,"1 but as a doublet
presenting the same concept.
The Septuagint's translation of fmw
"hear/
obey" by u[pakou<w "obey" confirms this
interpretation. fmw is the
equiv-
alent of "doing what
Yahweh says and wills."2 "All these commandments"
refers to the entire Sinaitic
legislation in the preceding context.3
Verse
15 returns to the conditional protasis by means of
"and if you reject my
statutes (hqHb sxm)."
This concept is diametri-
cally opposite the concept of
verse 3a. The resumption of the first
person singular pronominal
suffix (omitted from hvcm in
verse 14) main-
tains the identification with
Yahweh which is the sine qua non. The
1 Cf. Rashi: tvrybf
Mytw yrh vWft xl vdmlt xlWm "because you do
not
learn you do not do--here are two sins/transgressions" (Unlit, p. 136).
2 THAT, s.v. "fmw," by H. Schult,
2:980, "Auf Jahwe oder seinen
Reprasentanten
(z.B. Mose, Josua, einen Propheten [Ez 3, 7:]), 'horen'
heisst
tun, was Jahwe sagt and will."
3 See above, p. 53.
87
employment of sxm "reject" is the first occurrence of
the term in a
covenant context in the Old
Testament.1 It sets the stage for a theo-
logoumenon concerning rejection.
Rejection of the revelation2 of Yah-
weh is rejection of Yahweh
himself (cf. Num 11:20). Rejection of Yah-
weh brings retributive
rejection of the rebel by Yahweh (cf. Lev 26:15,
44; 1 Sam 15:23, 26; Hos 4:6).
Two historical pericopes describe
tion by Yahweh because they
failed to keep the sabbath and commenced
the worship of idols: Ezekiel
20 and 2 Kings 17. The first is a chron-
icle of the wilderness
experience immediately following the revealing
of Leviticus 26 at Sinai. The
second pericope is a record of apostasy
in the land, including the
golden calf cult which originated in the
wilderness. Any reading of
these two pericopes brings Leviticus 26 to
mind because of the consistent
repetition of precept (especially pro-
sabbath and anti-idolatry),
history (especially the exodus from
land (prospective in Ezekiel
20; possessed in 2 Kings 17), covenant
(both Abrahamic and Mosaic),
identification (with Yahweh as their god),
and promise (including the
prospect of restoration to landedness/bless-
ing when they return to
obedience). The concept of mutual rejection is
also present in both pericopes.
Disobedience is disloyalty to the cove-
nant and its suzerain. Chastisement
is administered for the breach of
covenant. Leviticus 26, by its
chronology (given to Moses at Sinai)
1 sxm is employed in the book
of Job (which this writer places
in
the patriarchal period), but not in the context of covenant.
2 Terms for revelation which are objects
of sxm
include qH/hqH
"statute,"
hrvt
"law/instruction," rbd "word," Fpwm "judgment," tfd
"knowledge,"
tvdf
"testimony," and tyrb "covenant."
88
and its covenant form
consisting of blessings and curses, is antecedent
to both historical settings. It
is also antecedent to both writings
containing these two pericopes.
Another
Mx precedes the next statement:
"and if (Mx) your
soul
despises (lfg) my ordinances (Fpwm)."
This demonstrates that 14b should
be considered subordinate to
14a since OR was not repeated there. Here (v. 15) the
repetition of Mx is clearly coordinate. This syntax promotes the
association of the two
subsequent infinitival clauses
with the second Mx
clause. The despising of Yahweh's
ordinances is an act of the
inner man. It is the spurning of the authority of the lord of
the covenant. The evidence of
the rebellion is the non-performance of Yahweh's
covenant stipulations: ytvcm-lk-tx tvWf ytlbl "not performing
all my commandments." The
infinitival clause with the negative expresses
the direction which the
spurning and rejection would take.1 The disobe-
dience involved the entire body
of legislation: "all my commandments."2
The next infinitive is an
attendant circumstance which might also indi-
cate the motive:3
"(thereby) breaking my covenant (tyrb
rrp)."
rrp "is
not primarily a legal
word."4 "It governs berit in the sense of aban-
doning Yahweh completely in Dt
31,16.20; Is 24,5; Jer 11,10; 31,32."5
1 Cf. GKC, p. 348
(§114f).
2 This could involve omission as well as
commission. The break-
ing
of any aspect of the covenant could also be considered as breach of
the
entire covenant (cf. Jas 2:10).
3 ibid., pp. 348 (§114f), 351 (§114o). If
motives can be legiti-
mately
included in the employment of the infinitive here, it would demon-
strate
a willful and obstinate breach of covenant.
4 McEvenue, Narrative Style, p. 170. As McEvenue points out, how-
ever,
it is used of breaking a law (Num 15:31) and includes laws in Lev
26:15,
44; Ezek 44:7; Ps 119:126; and, Ezra 9:14 (ibid.).
5 Ibid.
89
Usually the sense is that of
nullifying an oath (whether it is one's
own or another's) when it is
associated with tyrb (cf.
Gen 17:14;
30:9, 13, 14, 16; Judg 2:2; Jer
14:21;1 33:20-21; Ezek 16:59;
16, 18; Zech 11:10-11).2
In other words, the breach of covenant
revealed in the Mosaic
Covenant) and the subsequent nullification of
the promise of Yahweh (as
revealed in the Abrahamic Covenant and in the
immediately preceding context
of Lev 26:15, vv. 4-13).
The
landless nation of
must live in the light of
Yahweh's promise of landedness/blessing
(Abrahamic Covenant), in the
light of Yahweh's deliverance of the
nation from
its identity as the people of
God (Mosaic Covenant). They were an
elect people, a covenanted
people. They must demonstrate it by life
and deed as well as by word
(cf. Exod 19:8, "All which Yahweh has com-
manded/spoken we will
do/perform"). Shalom Paul's evaluation of these
motifs is worth repeating:
The leading motifs of early biblical literature,
election, redemp-
tion, covenant, and law, are closely interconnected:
God elected
the children of
tive intervention into history liberated an
enslaved people who
became bound to God through a pact whose
stipulations demand the
utmost obedience; the continued existence of
this religious commu-
nity is completely predicated upon the
observance and performance
of those principles and injunctions that
constitute the charter of
its covenant with God. The will of God expressed
through the law
is the basis of the covenant relationship
between God and Israel.3
1 See above, pp. 72-73 (especially n. 3).
2 McEvenue, Narrative Style, p. 170.
3 Paul, Studies in the Book of the Covenant, pp. 40-41 (italic
emphasis
added).
90
The threat of punishment in Leviticus
26:14-45 is given in the light
of the tension of wills
(Yahweh's will vs. man's will) and the claims
of authority (Yahweh's person
and deeds vs. man's person and deeds).
The
Consequence: Retribution (vv. 16-38)
The
unfolding drama of retribution consists of five stages:
(1) debilitation and defeat
(vv. 16-17), (2) drought (vv. 18-20),
(3) devastation by wild beasts
(vv. 21-22), (4) deprivation by siege
(vv. 23-26), and (5)
deportation (vv. 27-38). Each of the stages is
introduced by a protasis
employing the conditional particle 13M. The
protasis for verses 16-17
should be understood as verses 14-15 although
that protasis may be considered
also as the introduction to the entire
section concerning retribution.1
Stages two through five are charac-
terized by the occurrence of
the phrase MkytxFH-lf fbw
"seven times for
your sins" (vv. 18, 24,
28; v. 21 employs yk in
place of lf).2
The
overall effect of these five
stages is that of an increasing punishment
for transgression of the
covenant relationship to Yahweh. These pro-
gressive stages first prove the
obstinacy of
then offer repeated
opportunities for repentance.
Debilitation
and defeat (vv. 16-17)
The
emphatic ynx-Jx
"yea/indeed/surely I" is employed three times
in this pericope (vv. 16, 24,
and 41).3 The particle Jx is
employed for
l As the preceding outline demonstrates
(see above, pp. 85-90),
this
writer understands vv. 14-15 as the introduction to vv. 16-38 as
well
as the introduction to vv. 16-17.
2 The absence of this phrase in vv. 14-15
argues for their dis-
tinct
nature. See above, n. 1.
3 Jxv "and indeed"
is employed in vv. 39, 40, 42 bis, and 44.
91
"introducing emphatically
a new thought."1 Such usages are primarily
in poetic material or
"elevated prose."2 Only in verse 16 is Jx uti-
lized in this pericope to
introduce an apodosis. It contributes to the
sense of urgency in this first
series of judgmental threats. It also
confirms the wider scope of the
protasis in verses 14-15 (i.e., as the
introduction to the entire
section). The yqtl form of the verb
follows
the emphatic particle and first
person singular pronoun. The first
person singular of the verb
joins with the personal pronoun to emphasize
the subject: Yahweh. In the
protasis (vv. 14-15) Yahweh had been pre-
sented as the one who was not
obeyed. He was the one whose covenant
had been breached by the
disobedient. In the apodosis (vv. 16-17) Yah-
weh is being presented as the
one who executes judgment: "Yea, I myself
shall do this to you" (Mkl txz-hWfx ynx-Jx).
hlhb Mkylf ytdqphv "yea, I shall summon
against you immediately"
is explanatory of the first
phrase.3 dqp is
employed here as it is in
Jeremiah 15:3 in the hostile
sense of summoning a series of judgments
for breach of covenant.4
hlhb is the difficult member of
this phrase.5
It has been altered (cf. hlHb "with sickness" in the Samaritan
Penta-
teuch) as well as translated in
a variety of senses: a]
1 BDB, p. 64. Cf., also, GKC, p. 483
(§153).
2 BDB, p. 64. That there is something
special about the style of
Leviticus
26 has already been demonstrated (see above, esp. pp. 81-82).
Elliger
repeatedly refers to this section (vv. 14-45) as "rhythmische
Prosa"
(Leviticus, pp. 367, 368, 369, 370).
3 Being explanatory, the second phrase is
logically parallel to the first.
4 THAT,
s.v. “ dqp
“ by
Jer
15:1-4 are very similar to those in Lev 26:16-38.
5 See above, pp. 25-26.
92
(Septuagint), anou6n
"immediately/suddenly" (
@Alloj
in the Hexapla),1
vlyhb
"haste/hastily" (Targum Ongelos),2 "dismay/terror"
(Syriac Peshitta), velociter "quickly/speedily"
(Latin Vulgate), and
‘aly sur’a “quickly/speedily” (Arabic).3 hlhb
is
employed once in the Qumran
Cave 1 materials (1QH viii.33) and is
variously translated
"destruction,"4 "fear,"5 and
"confusion."6 The
Semitic background for lhb reveals a wide semantic range including the
concepts of supplication,
execration, communication, revelation, ter-
rorization,
acceleration/precipitation, idiocy, forgetfulness, relaxa-
tion/cessation, liberation, and
insouciance.7 Haste and terror, how-
ever, are its dominant semantic
elements in Hebrew and Aramaic.8 Jouon9
argues against the usual
"sudden terror."10 His classification of hlhb
1 Field, Origenis Hexaplorum, 1:215. Origen offered a conflate
reading,
believing X157n had not been translated by the Septuagint. He
marked
it with the Aristarchian asterisk
(the xi? periestigme<non).
2 This is also the Onqelos rendering of NvzpH "haste" in
Exod
12:11.
The Aramaic is directly related to the Hebrew.
3 Brian Walton, Biblia Sacra Polyglotta, 6 vols. (reprint ed.,
4 Lohse, Die Texte aus
5 G. Vermes, The Dead Sea Scrolls in
English (2nd ed.,
Penguin
Books Inc., 1975), p. 178.
6 Theodor H. Gaster, The Dead Sea Scriptures (revised ed., Garden
City,
NY: Anchor Books, 1964), p. 170.
7 David Cohen, Dictionnaire des
ton,
1976), 2:48.
8 TDOT,
s.v. “lhb“
by Benedikt Otzen, 2:3-5.
9 Jouon, Grammaire, p. 269 (§102d); "Notes philologiques sur le
texte
hebreu," Bib 9 (1928):43-44.
10 Cf. BDB, p. 96.
93
as an adverb is supported by two
major arguments (neither of which he mentions):
(1) The syntax of the clause
indicates that tpHw
"consumption" and tHdq
"fever"
are the direct objects of dqp. The sign of the accusative (tx) is employed before each of
these nouns but not before hlhb.1
(2) All the remaining uses of hlhb in the
old
Testament (Ps 78:33; Isa 65:23;
Jer 15:8) were translated sioush<
"immediately/sud-
denly" by the Septuagint.
The best sense appears to be that Yahweh would send his
chastisements
"immediately."
Yahweh
would send tpHw
"consumption"2 and tHdq
"fever"3 as the chastisements.
The same two terms are employed
again in Deuteronomy 28:22 where they are also
covenant curses against
disloyal
terms in biblical Hebrew. The
effects of these two physical debilitators are Mynyf
tvlkm
"consuming the eyes"4
and wpn tbydm "languishing of
the soul."5 Both verbs are plural
feminine
participles. The grammatical agreement in
1 BDB's (p. 96) statement that the two nouns
following hlhb
are
"appositives"
is incorrect since PK, in that case, surely would have pre-
ceded
hlhb,
too. Cf. John MacDonald, "The Particle tx in Classical
Hebrew:
Some New Data on Its Use with the Nominative," VT 14 (1964):270.
2 In later Hebrew tr referred to a
wasting, reduction, or loss
of
flesh. Cf. Marcus Jastrow, comp., A
Dictionary of the Targumim, the
Talmud Babli and
Yerushalmi, and the Midrashic Literature, 2 vols.
(reprint
ed.,
Craigie
offers the possibility that it means "tuberculosis" (i.e., con-
sumption
of the lungs). Cf. Peter C. Craigie, The
Book of Deuteronomy,
NICOT
(
3 Or, "inflammation of the eye"
(Jastrow, Dict., 2:1315).
4 Targum Onqelos: Nynyf
NkwHm
"darkening the eyes." Septuagint:
spakeli<zontaj tou>j
o]fqalmou<j
"gangrened eyes."
5 Cf. bxd "languish"|| hlk "consume" in
Deut 28:65 and bvd||hlk in
1
Sam 2:33. wpn "soul" could be
understood as a reference to the "life"
of
the physical body or as the "desire" or emotional drive of the indi-
vidual
to live.
94
number would require that both
effects refer to both of the previously
identified debilitators.
However, it is also possible to see a corres-
pondence between l6ba and 16bb:
"consumption" (fl ) = "Consuming (hlk) the eyes"
"fever/inflammation" = "languishing
of the soul/life"
If this correspondence is
accurate, the consumption would be most
noticeable or effective in the
eyes of the disobedient. The fever would
cause the energy to ebb from
the body or the will to live to disappear.
The
debilitation described in l6ab would increase the nation's
susceptibility to invasion.
They would sow, but not receive the bene-
fit of the harvest (16ca) since their invaders would devour it (16cb).1
The first 'v in 16c is best translated "so that."2
qyrl frz "sow to no
benefit" describes the
resulting state of the nation. The second 'v is
best translated
"since" or "because."3 The reason that there is
no bene-
fit from the sowing is that
their enemies would eat the harvest.
Verse
17 contains a recurrence of the familiar yttnv (cf.
vv. 4,
6, and 11). However, this
occurrence is different. It involves forfeit
rather than gift. "Thus I
shall set (Ntn) my
face (or, presence, ynp)4
against you" is a
statement concerning the removal of blessing. Divine
1 This is a theme of
covenant curses in the Palestinian Covenant:
Deut
28:33, 51. There is a logical progression (and, sociological real-
ity
in the ancient Near East) from debilitation to vulnerability, from
vulnerability
to conquest, and from conquest to pillaging.
2 Cf. GKC, pp. 504-5 (§166a). This
interpretation is not required
by
the syntax. It is allowed by the syntax. Even if the concept of
result
is eliminated and the passage is interpreted as presenting differ-
ent
areas of the Israelite's existence, it must be admitted that each was
often
the natural cause of the subsequent condition in the ancient world.
3 Cf. GKC, p. 492 (§158a). See, also, BDB,
p. 938, concerning qyr.
4 See Eichrodt, Theology, 2:35-39.
95
presence could be beneficial or
hostile. The disobedience of
manifestation of Yahweh on
earth against them. The giver of blessing would become
the giver of cursing. Both
aspects reside in the divine being. He is righteous and must
behave rightly toward those who
are disloyal as well as toward those who are loyal.
Disloyalty, according to the
divine word, would bring chastisement.
Thus it must be
and ever will be. Yahweh would
not be just if it were not so. The Mynp of
Yahweh
was viewed as the giver of
blessing (jrb),
security (rmw),
grace (NnH), and
peace/welfare/wholeness (Mvlw) in the Mronic Benediction (Num 6:24-26).
The Mynp of Yahweh as also associated with rest (Hvn, Exod 33:14). However,
the Mynp of Yahweh could also bring death (Exod 33:20).
Due to the description
of the "presence" of
Yahweh in the accounts of the exodus from
that the Mynp of Yahweh should be interpreted as "a form
of the divine manifesta-
tion"1 in the
same category as the hvhy jxlm
"messenger/angel of Yahweh"
and the hvhy dvbk "glory of Yahweh."2
Such an interpretation (in the
light of passages like Exod
33:2 and Isa 63:9) leads to an identification
of the Mynp (in at least some passages) with the
Yahweh-destroyer of
Exodus 12:23 (cf. Exod 11:4;
12:12-13). Other passages (e.g., Gen
19:24, "So Yahweh rained
upon
Yahweh out of the
heavens") contribute to the conclusion that the Mynp
of Yahweh possessed a separate
identity from other manifestations of the
divine essence. In Genesis
19:24 the destroyer is entitled Yahweh as
well as the one from whom he
received the judgmental elements. The New
1 Eichrodt, Theology, 2:38.
2 Ibid., 1:214; cf. Zimmerli, Theology, pp. 73, 78, 80.
96
Testament revelation indicates
that the theophanies of the Old Testament were, in fact, the
presence of the Son of God (cf.
John 1:18). Thus, Leviticus 26:17 could
be understood as a
statement concerning the
delegation of judgmental authority to the second person of the
Godhead. Such a delegation of
judgmental authority is revealed also in the New
Testament: "for neither does
the Father judge anyone, on the contrary (a]lla<),l
he has
entrusted (de<dwken)2 all judgment to the Son"
(John 5:22).3
The
divine presence in judgment would result in enemy attack: "so that you shall
be smitten (Jgv) before your enemies." Being beaten by
their enemies, the Israelites would
be dominated4 by their haters (xnW "hater" = byx "enemy"). The domination would be so
complete and humiliating that
1 BDF, p. 232 (§448(2)).
2 BAG, p. 192. Di<dwmi = Ntn. The perfect tense of
the Greek
verb
is significant: it presents the concept of past completion.
3 The employment of the New Testament in
the interpretation of
the
Old Testament is too often either misrepresented or abused. It is
not
an invalid methodology. Divine revelation is progressive in nature.
The
interpreter is accountable for the total revelation received at the
time
of his interpretation. He must seek to interpret each part of the
Word
in the light of its previous revelatory context and in the light of
its
subsequent revelatory context. To say that God did not intend a
meaning,
which he later reveals as the meaning, is to deny the relevance
of
later revelation merely because it is later. E.g.: (1) Acts 2:24-32
reveals
that Ps 16:8-11 may be interpreted accurately only when the
resurrection
of the Messiah is understood as its subject matter. (2) Heb
11:19
reveals that Abraham's reasoning in Gen 22:8-14 involved his belief
that
God could resurrect. Isaac. Since God reveals in Hebrews that Abra-
ham
believed thusly, the interpreter of Genesis is in error if he denies
it
on the grounds that such was not revealed in Genesis. (3) The "land"
of
Gen 12:3 must be interpreted as the "land" defined in the later reve-
lation
of Gen 15:18-21, because that was God's own definition of what he
meant
by "land" in the earlier revelation. The examples could be multi-
plied,
but the principle is obvious: scripture (even later revelation)
is
a valid means of interpreting scripture.
4 See above, pp. 26-27.
97
that you shall flee even
without one pursuing you (Mktx Jdr-Nyxv)."l
The
structure of verse 17 may be represented as follows:
Mkybyx ynpl Mtpgnv Mkb ynp yttnv -17a
so that you shall be smitten thus I shall set my presence
before your enemies against you
Mktx Jdr-Nyxv
Mtsnv Mkyxnw Mkb vdrv -17b
so that you shall flee even and your haters shall
rule
without
one pursuing you over/dominate you
The elevated style of the
pericope is once again demonstrated by the
employment of chiasmus in the
conceptual arrangement of verse 17.
Peace
and security would be removed by the chastisements pre-
sented in verses 16-17. It is
the opposite of verses 6-8 which pre-
sented the blessing of peaceful
existence and powerful security. Both
the physical and political
aspects of Mvlw
"wholeness/peace" would be removed
in the chastisement revealed in
verses 16-17. The first would be the means of
advancing the second: the lack
of physical well-being would set the stage for
the removal of peaceful
existence. Debilitation would lead eventually to defeat.
Drought
(vv. 18-20)
The
introduction to the second stage of chastisement is con-
tained in verse 18. It consists
of a full conditional sentence (protasis
and apodosis). The protasis
commences with the usual particle, Mx, but
continues with a construction
found only here in the Hebrew Old Testa-
ment.2 The temporal sense of df in this context would appear to be
"during.3 The
antecedent for the demonstrative pronoun (hlx
"these")
1 See above, p. 59 (Nyxv) .
2 Note the circelli in the MT and the
massorah's l.
3 Cf. BDB, p. 724 (sub I2ab).
98
would consist of all the
judgments described in the previous context
(vv. 16-17). The employment of yl fmw "listen to/obey me" is reminis-
cent of the first statement in
verse 14.1 If Israel failed to obey
Yahweh before the end of the
chastisement consisting of debilitation
and defeat, he would continue
to deal with them through judgment.
The
apodosis presents, for the first time, the concept of
degrees or increase in the
chastisement: "then I will continue2 to
discipline/chastise you seven
times for your sins" (Mktx hrsyl
ytpsyv
MkytxFH-lf
fbw).
The employment of rsy
"discipline/chastise" in this
pericope is limited to the
introduction to stages two, four, and five
(vv. 18, 23, and 28). The
purpose of divine discipline is presented
by Amos (4:6, 8, 9, 10, and 11)
as the production of repentance, return-
ing to Yahweh.3 Amos
employed the same descriptions or elements of
covenantal discipline: disease,
defeat, and drought. The "seven"
(fbw) is
more than a symbolic number:4 "It is an appropriate and
evocative number in view of the
importance of the seventh in Israelite
religion."5 It should
not be understood as a revelation concerning
seven punishments equivalent to
seven sins extrapolated from the preced-
1 See above, pp. 85-86.
2 The employment of Jsy with a complementary
infinitive having
the
l
prefix is a common occurrence in biblical Hebrew. In such con-
structions,
Jsy)
may have the sense of "continue." Cf. GKC, p. 350 (§114m).
3 bvw "return" is
Amos' term for repentance. The Syriac equiva-
lent, twb, occurs in the Peshitta's paraphrase of the first half
of
v. 18.
4 Cf. Elliger, Leviticus, p. 375: "Naturlich ist 'sieben' eine
schematische
Steigerungszahl" ("'Seven' is naturally a stylized number
of
intensity") .
5 Wenham, Leviticus, p. 331.
99
ing context.1 The
sabbatical context2 and content (e.g., vv. 34-35) of
Leviticus 26 provide MkytxFH-lf fbw "seven times for your
sins" with an
aura of just recompense.3
The repetition of this phrase in the remain-
ing stages of chastisement is
significant. The sabbatical principle is
reinforced by it. The emphasis
of that principle was on the lordship
of Yahweh--his authority over
When
ship. By not observing the
sabbaths, they placed themselves under the
covenant curses. Those curses
would enforce the sabbatical principle
where they had failed to do so
voluntarily.
Verse
19 continues the string of wqtl verb forms: "and I shall
smash (wqtl, rbw) your
proud might, and I shall make (wqtl, Ntn) your
heavens like iron and your
ground like bronze." Prosperity had puffed
self-confident.4
Once in the land,
destructive forces which would
lead to a perversion of the land and a
1 Cf. Rashi: hlfml
tvrvmxh tvrybf fbw lf tvynfrvp fbw "seven
punishments
for seven transgressions/sins which were mentioned above"
(re:
MkytxFH-lf fbw, v. 18); cf. hWf xlv dml
xl ... tvrybf
fbw yrh
rqyfb rpvk tvlmb rpvk MyrHxh tx fnvm
MymkHh tx xnvW Mywvfh MyrHxh sxvm
"these
are seven transgressions/sins . . . he does not study and he does
not
practice, rejecting others who practice, hating the wise, restrain-
ing
the others, denying the contents (of scripture), denying the essence
(of God) " (re: ytyrb
tx Mkrphl,
v. 15). wmvH,
pp. 136-37.
2 See above, pp. 47-49.
3 An interesting reference to a seven-year
recompense for nonob-
servance
of the sabbath or festivals occurs in CD (
Document)
xii.5 (in this case it was not a capital offense since the
man
was presumed mentally ill). Cf. Lohse, Die
Texte aus
90-91.
4 Cf. Wenham, Leviticus, p. 331; Keil and Delitzsch, Pentateuch,
2:473.
100
distortion of the identity of the
land-giver, Yahweh:
The land, source of life, has within it
seductive power. It invites
with all its demands and possibilities to serene
space apart from
history, without contingency, without demand,
without mystery.1
historical people, open either to the Lord of
history or to his
blessings yet to be given. Settled into an
eternally guaranteed situation,
one scarcely knows that one is indeed addressed
by the voice in history
who gives gifts and makes claims. And if one is
not addressed, then one
does not need to answer. And if one does not
answer, then one is free not
to care, not to decide, not to hope, and not to
celebrate.2
It
would be necessary for Yahweh to deflate the puffed up ego
of his people in order to bring
them back to covenant stipulations. He
would proceed to
"smash" (rbw, the
same root employed to describe Yah-
weh's destruction of
new yoke, "proud
might" (zf Nvxg) or
"pride of power."3 This combina-
tion is employed by Ezekiel
five times (of
of
24:21).4 Pride is
described by the prophets as the central aspect of
Amos 6:8). The root of their
guilt was their pride in their military
1 Brueggemann, The Land, p. 53.
2 Ibid., p. 54.
3 The Septuagint's th>n
u!brin th?j u[perhfani<aj "the wanton violence
of
arrogance" is very revealing since u!brij is the attitude
"arising from
the
pride of strength" (LSJ, p. 1841). Equally interesting to the expos-
itor
is the interpretive translation of Targum Onqelos: Nvkpqt
rqy
"your
precious
power." The genitive relationship in the MT's construction may
be
classified as limitation/specification describing the point where the
pride
is applied; cf. A. B. Davidson, Introductory
Hebrew Grammar:
Hebrew Syntax (3rd ed., reprint,
4 TDOT,
s.v. "hxAGA," by Diether Kellermann,
2:350.
101
security.1 Their
pride was the evidence of their inability to repent.2
Therefore, in order to bring
where she could choose to
repent), God would have to destroy her ter-
rible pride. Such destruction
would be gracious. If pride persists in
its stubbornness, it leads to
complete and final destruction (cf. Prov 16:18).
As a means of smashing
the same verb employed in the
description of the equivalent blessing,
v. 4) the heavens like iron and
the earth like bronze. This same fig-
ure occurs in Deuteronomy 28:23
(Palestinian Covenant). The rain-giver
would be the drought-giver. He
would be giving always, but the gift
would depend on the obedience
or disobedience of his people. Drought
was a common means of dealing
with rebellious
drought to chastise
(Amos 4), Josiah (Jeremiah 14),
and Zerubbabel (Haggai 1), just to name
a few. In these cases the basis
(i.e., the revelatory basis) for the
chastening may have been Leviticus
26:19 and/or Deuteronomy 28:23.
The result of the drought and the description of its
effect
upon
(Hk) shall
be exhausted (wqtl, Mmt) without benefit (qyr, cf. v. 16)
because your land shall not
yield its produce nor the trees of the land
their fruit." The entire
causal clause is identical to that in 4b
1 Wolff, Joel and Amos, p. 282. The "pride
of Jacob" was the
object
of Yahweh's abhorrence (hapax legomenon
bxt=bft, Amos 6:8).
2 Wolff, Hosea, p. 100. Note that Hos 5:5 is in a
rib-patterned
pericope
(cf. v. 1) manifesting breach of covenant. Both in 5:4 and in
7:10,
the Nvxg
of
ance"
(bvw)
to their god.
102
(with the exception of the
negatives here and the changing of hdWh
Cf
to Crxh Cf).1
When
gift itself (the land) to cry
out against them. Landedness with obedi-
ence produced a harmonious
existence on the land and with the land.
Landedness with disobedience
and breach of covenant would produce
enmity with the land.
Estrangement from the land was merely an evidence
of estrangement from the
land-giver, Yahweh. A spiritual drought (cf.
Amos 8:11-13) would bring about
a physical drought. In simple terms,
the demand on
perity of the land will be
withheld.
Devastation
by wild beasts (vv. 21-22)
The
third stage of covenant cursing corresponds to the blessings
of harmony with the land's
fauna (v. 6) and of unhindered population
increase (v. 9). The protasis
is contained in 21a: "and if you walk
contrary to me2 and
are not willing (hbx xl) to
obey me.3" The deed
and the desire were anti-Yahweh.
Rashi unnecessarily explained the
term yrq "opposition" as "irregularly (yxrf)" obeying the commandments
of God.4
Verse
21b provides the first part of the apodosis: "then I
1 See above, pp. 28-29, 56-57.
2 For the meaning and employment of the
idiom yrq Mf jlh, see
above,
pp. 29-30.
3 See above, pp.. 85-86, re: fmw. The mention of
willingness
demonstrates
Yahweh's concern for the internal as well as the external
aspects
of obedience.
4 wmvH, p. 138
103
shall add against you (lf Jsy) a plague/blow (hkm) seven
times/seven-
fold1 for your sins.2"
Again, Rashi offers an extrapolation of seven
judgments.3 However,
the meaning has already been established by its
previous employment in verse
18; it is a means of drawing attention to
the sabbatical principle which
had been violated by the nation. The
"plague/blow" is that
which smites (being the substantive of
the verb
"smite," hkn), that which inflicts injury or destroys.4
The term is
employed in two contexts as a
reference to the "blow" of Yahweh: those
contexts in which he is the
exodus-causer (Num 11:33; 1 Sam 4:8) and
those in which he is the
land-giver (Lev 26:21; Deut 28:59 ter,
61;
29:21). Even in those contexts
where Yahweh is represented as the
land-giver (in Leviticus and Deuteronomy),
the contexts express the
history of the exodus and
Deuteronomy 28:59 relates the "blow" to the
plagues of
covenant with Yahweh, he will
treat them in the manner in which he
dealt with
be treated like
"Yea,
I will send against you the beasts of the field (tyH
hdWh)"
identifies the nature of the "blow/plague" (v. 22a). Rashi5
and Onqelos6
explained or translated Hlw "send"
by yrg "incite."
1 Cf. Jouon, Grammaire, p. 442 ( 142q).
2 See above, pp. 98-99.
3 wmvH, p. 138, re: Mkykrd
vmwnv, v.
22.
4 BDB, pp. 645-47. The verb is employed in
Leviticus only four
times
(24:17, 18, 21; 26:24). In all the contexts in Leviticus the
smiting
is fatal.
5 wmvH, p. 138.
6 Sperber, The Bible in Aramaic, 1:213.
104
Yahweh will turn the animals of
the land against the inhabitants. He
will incite those animals to
attack both the people and their livestock.
In 22b the results are described
vividly: "so that they1 will make you
childless (lkw Pi’el), destroy (trk
Hip’il)
your cattle, diminish (Ffm
Hip’il) you,
and your roads will become desolate (Mmw
Nip’al)." All
of the verbs in this result
clause are of the wqtl type. Each
explains
a different aspect of the
plague of wild animals. The verbs are not
necessarily in chronological
order, though perhaps in logical order.2
The
ravaging lions which devoured imported non-Israelites in
the early years of the Assyrian
captivity (2 Kgs 17:24-26) should not
be considered a fulfillment of
this covenant (or any covenant made with
participants.3
However, the account of the forty-two young men of
with the curse of Leviticus
26:22 (2 Kgs 2:23-25). Ezekiel refers to
this form of divine, judgment
several times in his prophecies (Ezek
5:17; 14:15, 21). When the
curse or plague of the wild beasts would
be sent by Yahweh, the
unfaithful Israelites would lose their children
(cf. the forty-two young
mockers of Elisha) and their livestock. In
that manner, the population
would diminish. The young children would
become food for the beasts and
the remaining Israelites would be starv-
ing because their livestock had
also been destroyed. They would soon
1 The third feminine singular of all the
verbs in 22b is in gram-
matical
agreement with the subject, hyH, which is a collective
singular.
2 Cf.
3 Contra Wenham, Leviticus, p. 331; Zimmerli, Ezekiel
1, p. 315.
The
theological covenants of the Old Testament were all made with the
nation
of
105
be holed up at home for fear of
the dangers presented by the beasts
along their roads and pathways.
The disobedient Israelite's day would
pass much as the individual in
Amos 5:19: he might flee from a lion in
his field, escape from a bear
met along the path of flight, arrive home
to lean against his wall
frightened and out of breath, only to be bit
by the poisonous serpent lying
in wait for him in the wall! There is
no escape from the judgment of
Yahweh.
Deprivation
by siege (vv. 23-26)
The
fourth stage of judgment commences where the third left off:
the nation confined to home and
city away from the ravaging beasts would
be further besieged by human
enemies. There is no liberty for the dis-
obedient; there is no rest for
the wicked. The heavy wheels of divine
justice roll on.
"And
if by these things you do not let yourselves be corrected
by me (yl rsy), so that you continue to1 walk
contrary to me" forms the
full protasis. The
demonstrative pronoun (cf. v. 18) refers to the
preceding stages. The verb rsy "correct/discipline" occurs for the
second time in an introduction
to a judgmental stage.2 However, here
it is in the unusual Nip’al tolerativum3 expressing the subject's allow-
ing something to happen to him
or have an effect upon him: "you do not
1 The context demands this translation not
the form. The same
form
cannot, by context, be translated as a durative or repetitive in
v.
9 (tyrb Myqh) or in v. 11 (Nkwm Ntn). Thus, Jouon's description of
wqtl as "repetitive or
durative action" is misleading. Wqtl
may have
other
kinds of action, depending upon its context. It is not the form,
but
the context which determines the kind of action. See Jouon, Gram-
maire, p. 335 (§119x):
"l'aspect de wegatalti celui de l’action repetee
ou
durative" ("the aspect of weqatalti is that of repetitive or durative
action").
2 See above, p. 98.
3 GKC, p. 137 (§51c).
106
let yourselves be
corrected."1 Jouon emphasizes also the sense of
"laisser faire"
("non-interference") and "efficace" (effectual")2
in
this employment of the Nip’al.
interference with God's
chastising work (especially as revealed in
stages one through three, vv.
16-22). However, they would not be
passive; they would actively
resist the changing of their will. They
would continue to be obstinate.
One day, however, Yahweh's chastening
would be effectual: a
generation of Israelites will obey him fully
and be in the position of
receiving the fulfillment of the Abrahamic,
Mosaic, and Palestinian
covenants.3
The
translation "by me" (yl) is in
accord with the employment
of the preposition l following passive verbs.4 Above the
turmoil of
the chastisements, Yahweh sits
enthroned as the agent of all of the
judgments. He is the author5
of the punishments, both with regard to
their revelation and their
execution. He it is who seeks to correct
1 BDB, p. 416.
2 Jouon, Grammaire, p. 115 (§51c). This employment of the Nip’al
of
10) occurs only five times (Lev 26:23; Ps 2:10; Prov 29:19; Jer
6:8;
31:18).
3 See above, pp. 77-78, for a discussion
of the perfection of
fulfillment
eschatologically.
4 Cf. BDB, p. 514; GKC, p. 389 (§121f).
This particular usage
of
l
needs to be pursued among the cognate languages, too. Instead of a
vocative-l,
perhaps an l of agency would be preferable in contexts like
the
Ugaritic ltbrknn . ltr . i1 aby . tmrnn .
lbny bnwt "verily thou
wilt
bless him by Tor-‘il, my father; (yea) beatify him by the Creator
of
creatures." The primary difficulty in this example is the lack of
the
passive, but it is an alternative to Gordon's "to."
(§9.16)
(2 Aqht:I:24-25).
5 Jouon, Grammaire, p. 401 (g132f).
107
desires their fellowship and their
return to the covenant relationship
for blessing.1
The
last phrase of verse 23 is a repetition of the first portion
of verse 21.2 The
concept is reversed in the first phrase of verse 24:
"then I, yea, I myself,
shall walk contrary (or, in opposition) to you"
(yrqb
Mkmf ynx-Jx ytklhv).3 The syntax is emphatic. Yahweh
will per-
sonally oppose the disobedient
and obstinately rebellious nation. This
may be a reference back to the
entrusting of judgment to Yahweh's
"presence" (Mynp) in verse 17.4 In other words, the Mynp of verse 17
is the ynx "I" of verse 24. Yahweh, or at least
one person of the God-
head bearing the title Yahweh,
will personally attend to their chastise-
ment. There must also be an
indication here of
other deities (idols). This
possibility existed, as evidenced by the
necessity of the prohibition of
idolatry in verse 1. When no obedience
was forthcoming, Yahweh would
proceed to act toward
acted toward him. Opposition
breeds opposition. The nation would reap
exactly what they had sown. If
they were concerned about the impene-
trable earth and heavens, they
would have much more with which to con-
cern themselves when Yahweh
manifests his impenetrability and obstinacy.
If they had worshipped idols in
their midst, they would now be faced
with the active presence of
Yahweh himself. Yahweh could do what the
1 See above, p. 85.
2 See above, pp. 29-30, 102.
3 See above, pp. 90-91, re: ynx-Jx. The addition of the b to
yrq also occurs in vv. 27, 40, and 41. There
appears to be no discern-
ible
reason other than variety for its employment.
4 See above, pp. 94-96.
108
idol deities could not do: he
could manifest himself clearly by ful-
filling his own word.
"Yea,
I shall smite (hkn Hip’il) you, indeed, even I, seven
times for your sins" (v.
24b). The "blow" (cf. v. 21, hkm)1
would fall.
Yahweh himself would personally
deliver it; he would be the smiter.
The giver would become the
smiter. The healer would become the injurer.
The builder would become the
destroyer. All the relationships and
manifestations would be
reversed: blessing would be turned to cursing.
Again
had not rested nor allowed the
land to rest would not rest under the
smiting hand of Yahweh.
Verse
25 progresses logically from the active first person
singular verbs to the passive
second person plural verbs:
tyrb-Mqn
tmqn brH Mkylf ytxbhv -25a
yea, I shall bring
a sword against
you which shall wreak
covenant
vengeance,
Mkyrf-lx Mtpsxnv
therefore,
you shall be gathered
into your cities;
Mkkvtb
rbd ytHlwv
-25b
and I shall send
a pestilence in
your midst,
byvx-dyb Mttnv
thus
you shall be given into the
hand of the enemy.
Yahweh declares that he
"shall bring . . . a sword (brH2) which
shall
wreak covenant vengeance (tyrb-Mqn tmqn)" upon the nation. The
use of
1 See above, p. 103.
2 See above, pp. 61-62. Rashi declared: xrqmbw
brH txbh lk
Mybyvx tvlyyH tmHlm xvh "every bringing of
the sword which is in scrip-
ture
is the war of enemy armies" (wmvH n, p. 139, re: tyrb
Mqn).
109
the participle emphasizes the
constant or persistent nature of the
vengeance to be wrought.1
The cognate accusative construction is uti-
lized to intensify the concept.2
The retributive aspect is unmistake-
able. There is no escaping the
avenging sword; it is tied to the cove-
nant. If the covenant exists,
the sword exists; yea, the sword is
demanded. The phrase
"covenant vengeance" is found nowhere else in the
Old Testament. However, there
is a possibility that tyrbh trsm
"the
bond (or, discipline?) of the
covenant" in Ezekiel 20:37 contains a
similar concept concerning
covenant accountability.3 The concept of
"the sword wreaking covenant
vengeance was taken from Leviticus 26:25
by the two manuscripts of the
Damascus Document (Zadokite Document).4
Many features of this phrase
have made it stand out in the minds of
the Israelites: (1) It is a hapax phainomenon outside the scriptures
or documents clearly dependent
on verse 25 (e.g., CD). (2) The imagery
is graphic. (3) The syntax is
emphatic. (4) The relationship to the
covenant is unmistakeable.
Yahweh stated it to be remembered. If the
nation remembers, it will not
feel the effects of the covenant sword.
Memory means survival. Those
who do not remember will enter the school
of the sword.
"Therefore,
you shall be gathered unto your cities" is a state-
ment concerning the effect of
the avenging sword. As the enemy incur-
sions occur, the people will
seek refuge behind protective city walls.
1 GKC, p. 356 (§116a).
2 Ibid., p . 367 (§117q) .
3 Elliger, Leviticus, p. 376 n. 45. Cf. the full discussion of
the
textual problems in Ezek 20:37 in Zimmerli, Ezekiel
1, p. 403.
4 CD (A)i.17 and (B)xix.13 (Lohse, Die Texte aus
67,
102-3.
110
Their fields will be left for
the enemy to plunder and devastate. All
will flee to urban areas. The
philosophy will be commonplace that there
is strength in numbers and
safety in fortresses. However, when the
enemy besieges the city,
cutting off escape, a new enemy will raise
its ugly head: "and I
shall send a pestilence (rbd) in
your midst."
rbd
carries
with it the concept of great loss of life.1 The Septuagint
always translated it with qa<natoj/qanatou?n "death/to die."2
The paral-
lel in the Palestinian Covenant
is explicit: df rbdh-tx jb hvhy qbdy
hmdxh
lfm jtx vtlk "Yahweh shall make the pestilence cleave to you
until he has made you vanish
from the land" (Deut 28:21). Out of the forty-
six times rbd is employed in the Old Testament, it occurs
seventeen
times in Jeremiah and twelve
times in Ezekiel.3 The clearest example
of the place of rbd in the setting encountered in Leviticus 26:25
occurs
in Ezekiel 7:15, "The sword
(brH) is outside and pestilence (rbd) and
famine are inside; he who is in
the field shall die by the sword and
he who is in the city shall be
devoured by famine and pestilence."
In the
end, the result is the same: "thus you shall be given
(Ntn) into
the hand of the enemy." The land-giver/peace-giver would
become the people-giver (i.e.,
giving them to the enemy)! During times
of obedience,
ing times of disobedience
(especially prolonged, obstinate disobedience),
1 S. R. Driver, A Critical and Exegetical Commentary on Deuteron-
omy, ICC (3rd ed., reprint,
Cf.
Wolff, Joel and Amos, p. 221:
"It always refers to a lethal epi-
demic,
and hence it often stands, as here [Amos 4:10], in parallelism
with
'sword."'
2 Edwin Hatch and Henry A. Redpath, eds., A Concordance to the
Septuagint, 3 vols. in 2 (reprint
ed.,
Verlagsanstalt,
1975), 1:623b, 625a, 3:179a, 228c.
3 Gerhard Lisowsky, Konkordanz zum hebraischen alten Testament
(zweite
Auflage,
111
they could find themselves the
received, as a gift to their enemies.
dy
"hand" signifies power/control.1 They could not escape the
enemy.
The siege would be complete.
Verse
26 continues the description of siege by giving more
details concerning life within
the besieged cities' walls: "when I
destroy (rbw) your food', supply (MHl-hFm)." The infinitive with the
preposition b is a temporal clause.2 Here it
precedes the remainder
the verse in order to receive
emphasis and in order to be descriptive
of all the following verbs.3
MHl-hFm "food supply"
(or, "staff of
bread") occurs only five
times in the Old Testament (here; Ps 105:16;
Ezek 4:16; 5:16; 14:13). In
Psalm 105:16 the construction occurs as
an equivalent to bfr "famine." The same parallelism may be
identified
in Ezekiel 5:16 and 14:13.
Clearly, therefore, MHl-HFm
completes the
triad of sword, pestilence, and
famine, which is so frequent in Ezekiel
(cf. 5:12; 6:11, 12; 7:15;
12:16; 14:21) and Jeremiah (cf. 14:12;
21:7, 9; 24:10; 27:8, 13; 28:8
[hmHlm "war" in
place of brH
"sword"];
29:17, 18; 32:24, 36; 34:17;
38:2; 42:17, 22; 44:13). The idea
conveyed by the grouping of
these three curses together is that of the
inescapability of judgment.4
If this punishment should seem unduly
1 BDB, p. 3.90.
2 GKC, p. 503 (§164g).
3 Samuel Rolles Driver, A Treatise on the Use of the Tenses in
Hebrew and Some Other
Syntactical Questions
(3rd ed., revised, reprint,
ing
of the Hebrew sentence in Gen 3:5 where the temporal clause preced-
ing
two wqtl forms describes both, not
just the first. This fairly com-
mon
construction enables the author of Lev 26:26 to maintain the series
of
wqtl forms while, at. the same time,
emphasizing the temporal adverbial
modifier
by its hanging, prepositive position. This circumlocution main-
tains
the verbal continuity and establishes the correct time sphere for
the
remaining verbs.
4 Zimmerli, Ezekiel 1, p. 191.
112
harsh, let it be remembered
that disobedience/sin is equally terrible
in its nature. Sin is ingratitude,
antipathy to Yahweh's nature and
will, arrogance, deceit, and
irreverence. In short, the nature of sin
is the rejection of the divine
claims to suzerainty, the pursuit of con-
duct contrary to covenant
stipulations, and the rupture of the highest
of human relationships, the
father-son relationship with Yahweh.1 The
impugning of Yahweh's character
is awful, for it is anti-God. The
effects of sin, or judgment
against sin, are both immediate and mediate.
The immediate effects are the
federal consequences which are the direct
result of disruption of the
created order (e.g., the contraction of
disease from sexual promiscuity
and homosexuality, the sclerosis of the
liver from excessive
drunkenness). The mediate effects are the result
of direct divine intervention
(e.g., the leprosy, so-called, of Miriam,
the death of Uzziah as he
touched the ark of the covenant, the deaths
of Aaron's sons as they offered
"strange fire" on the altar). The
effects of
of both the immediate and
mediate consequences. Sometimes the two can-
not be distinguished, for God
may choose to supernaturally initiate an
effect which is normally
immediate at a time and in a manner which is
not normal (cf. the death of
Herod Agrippa I in Acts 12:23).
The
famine would be evidenced by the communal oven and the con-
comitant rationing of the
bread: "ten women shall bake your bread in
one oven and they shall return
(or, deliver, bvw Hip’il) your bread by
weight (or, rationed, lqwmb) so that you eat but are not satisfied
( fbW )."
In times of peace and prosperity, every woman would require an
1 Cf. Eichrodt, Theology, 1:375-76, 383, 466; 2:380-93.
113
oven for herself and her family.
The situation would so deteriorate
that one oven could take care
of the needs of ten women and their
respective families.1
The food supply would be so meager that the
baked bread would be carefully
rationed. Rationing would not satisfy
the hunger in their stomaches,
however. Once they had eaten and had
been satisfied (cf. v. 5).2
During the siege they would be unsatisfied.
If
believe that he could supply
their needs while they observed the weekly
and annual sabbaths, then let
their new deities feed them! Let their
own labors satisfy them! The
withdrawal of Yahweh's beneficial pres-
ence would cause
prosperity and satisfaction of
former days.
their prosperity by their own
strength and labors. Yahweh had given
and Yahweh could take it away
(cf. Job 1:21).
Deportation
(vv. 27-38)
As the
fifth and final stage of Yahweh's covenant vengeance is
revealed, the picture of
degrees of chastisement is completed. The
progression is increasingly
severe: debilitation/defeat(harassment)
-->drought/destruction of
pride-->devastation by animals/decimation
-->deprivation by
siege/death(sword)/disease(pestilence)/famine-->
dehumanization(cannibalism)/desolation/deportation(exile).
They who
1 Keil and Delitzsch, Pentateuch, 2:474.
2 See above, p. 58. With this second
occurrence of fbW, the
thought
occurs to this writer that the repetition of fbw "seven" and
the
employment of fbW "satisfy" are a form of paronomasia.
It contrib-
utes
to the emphasis on the sabbatical principle as well as indicating
the
significance of the satisfaction/nonsatisfaction tension.
114
had been brought into the land
would be expelled from the land if they
did not repent. The leaving of
fore, hopeful. The leaving of
therefore, hopeless. Confidence would be turned to despair. Yahweh
would
reject them.
Introduction (vv. 27-28)
Verse
27 is a conflation of 18a and 23b:1
yrq
ymf Mtklhv (23b) + yl
vfmwt xl hlx-df-Mxv (18a)
and
you continue to walk in and
if, during these, you do
opposition to me not
obey me
yrqb ymf Mtklhv (27b) + yl vfmwt xl
txzb---Mxv (27a)
and
you continue to walk in and
if, in this, you do
opposition to me not
obey me
The alteration of txzb "in this" for hlx-df "during these" appears to
have been influenced by 23a, hlxb "in these." The singular in 27a
would be construed best as a
deliberate limitation to stage four (vv.
23-26). This association is
further confirmed by another alteration to
the phraseology of stage
four: yrqb
"in
opposition" was employed pre-
viously only in 24a. Stage
five, therefore, was entered specifically
because of the failure of stage
four to bring about the desired effect.
The singular txz "this" signals the end of
chastisement and patience.
If stage four has been ignored,
the nation would have reached the point
of no return. The ultimate
rejection of stage five would be the last
of Yahweh's dealings with his
disloyal people.
Confirmation
of the finality of this stage of punishment is
offered also in the continued
conflation:
1 See above, pp. 97-98, 107.
115
MkytxFH-lf fbw Mktx hrsyl ytpsyv(18b)+yrqb
Mkmf ynx-Jx ytkhlv(24a)
and
I shall continue to discipline then I, yea, I myself, shall
you
seven times for your sins walk in opposition to you.
MkytxFH-lf fbw ynx-Jx Mktx ytrsyv(28b) + yrq-tmHb
Mkmf ytklhv (28a)
and
I, yea, I myself, shall discipline then I shall walk in fervent/
you
seven times for your sins angry
opposition to you
As in verse 27, verse 28
reflects borrowings from the phraseology of
stages two and four. Variants
in those borrowings are the result of
the influence of stage four's
phraseology. The ynx-Jx
"yea, I" of 28b
is clearly influenced by the
post-verbal ynx-Jx and ynx-Mg of verse 24.
The finite verb form of rsy "discipline" in 28b is the direct
counter-
part of verse 23a, not a
reflection of the complementary infinitive of
l8b. The intrusion of firm
"heat/rage/fury"1 between b and yrq may have
been influenced by the
structure of tyrb-Mqn tmqn
"wreaking covenant
vengeance"2 in
verse 25.3 The following chart demonstrates the continu-
ity of hmH "fury" and Mqn "vengeance" in similar contexts:
hmH Mqn
//4 xnq Jx
brH tyrb fbw
byr (Myvg) Nvdx (lxrwy)5
Lv 26:6 28 25 no 25 25 28 no yes
Is 34: 2 8 no 5 8 2 5 no
59: 18 17 no 17 21 yes yes
63: 3 4 no 3 yes 1 no
Ez 24: 8 8 no no yes
25: 14 14 no 14 13 yes 12 no
17 17 no " " “ “
Mi 5: 14 14 no 14 (6:1) 14 yes
Na 1: 2 2 yes 2 yes no
Ps 79: 6 10 no 5
12 6 no
Pr 6: 34 34 no 34 no yes
1 BDB, p. 404. tmH could be employed here
adjectivally: "fervent."
2 See above, pp. 108-9. 3 See above, pp. 29-30.
4 // = strict poetic parallelism of HmH
and Mqn.
5 Translation for Hebrew words, from left
to right: "fury,"
"vengeance,"
"jealousy," "anger," "sword,"
"covenant," "seven," "sue/law-
suit,"
"nations," "
6 The biblical chapter is given before the
colon. The numbers in
the
chart after the colon are the verse references. Parentheses indicate
material
or subjects understood but not stated in the pericopes.
116
Thus hmH and Mqn are related in enough contexts in the Old Testament
that their concepts may be considered as nearly equivalent in this
particular context. The disciplinary1 procedure of Yahweh has reached
its climax in stage five. The two verses of its introduction indicate
a clear continuity with stage four. They also possess a finality of
tone. No reader of the Hebrew text can read verses 27-28 (especially
after a reading of vv. 14-26) and not feel a chill because of this
finality; it is stunning.
Dehumanization (cannibalism) (v. 29)
The content of verse 29 is so horrifying that Rashi made no com-
ment upon it. The simplicity of the style (which is characteristic of
this pericope) and the employment of poetic chiasmus emphasize the con-
cept contained in the declaration:
vlkxt Mkytnb rWbv || Mkynb rWb Mtlkxv
yea, you shall eat the flesh Then you shall eat the flesh
of your daughters. of your sons,
object - wqtl
yqtl - object
Such dehumanization of the nation of
prolonged siege situation in stage four. The blessing of offspring (v.
9; cf. Deut 28:4, 11) was of prime importance because progeny was the
vehicle by which the promised land would be enjoyed continuously:
an Israelite, with his strong sense of family solidarity, looked
forward to living on in his descendants; and the extinction of the
family was contemplated as the most terrible of calamities.2
1 See above, pp. 97-99.
2 A. F. Kirkpatrick, The Book of Psalms (
Press, 1902), p. 657.
117
As a man had been blessed by Yahweh to produce many children, so a man
would be cursed by Yahweh to devour his own children. As awful as the
judgment contemplated here, the sin which brought the judgment is more
awful. Even more horrifying is the evidence of history to the effect
that such cannibalism was practiced by Israelites under siege:
(1) at
(2) at
4:10; Ezek 5:10)
(3) at
6:4.4-5)1
Such cannibalism was also a curse contained in the Palestinian Covenant
(Deut 28:53-57). Jeremiah's lamentation over this terrible scene of
covenant vengeance is instructive both for its recognition of Yahweh's
sovereignty and its recognition of human responsibility:
Yahweh has done what he had purposed,
he has carried out his word which he had commanded from ancient
times;
he has overthrown unsparingly;
yea, he has caused the enemy to rejoice over you,
he has exalted the horn of your adversaries.
Their heart cried out to the Lord:
"O wall of the daughter of
cause (your) tears to flow like a river day and night;
do not grant yourself (any) respite,
do not let the 'daughter of your eye' cease!
Arise, give a ringing cry in the night at the beginning of the
watches,
pour out your heart like the waters before the presence of the Lord,
lift up your hands to him for the life of your children
who are feeble because of famine at the head of all the streets."
Look, O Yahweh, and behold with whom you have dealt in this way!
Should women eat their fruit, the children who were tenderly
carried?
Should the priest and the prophet be slain in the sanctuary of
the Lord?
1 William Whiston, trans., Josephus: Complete Works (reprint ed.,
118
The young man and the old man lie on the ground in the streets,
my maidens and my young men/warriors have fallen by the sword;
you slew (them) in the day of your anger,
you butchered (them) unsparingly.
You called my terrors all around as on a feast day,
yea, there was not an escapee or survivor in the day of the anger
of Yahweh,
my enemy exterminated those whom I carried tenderly and brought up.
(Lam 2:17-22)
Desolation (vv. 30-32)
Verse 30a makes a concise, balanced declaration: "and I shall
destroy your high places (Mkytmb-tx ytdmwhv) and cut down your incense
altars (MkynmH-tx ytrkhv)." There is no difficulty in understanding
the actions described. The difficulty arises with the identification
of the objects of destruction: hmb "high place" and NmH "incense altar."
The "high place" is commonly recognized at the present time as an "open-
air installation not intended to serve as a residence for the deity, as
was the case of the temple, but rather as a site that the deity would
visit when invoked."1 Such installations included the carved images
(lsp: cf. v.1; 2 Chr 33:19), stelae (hbcm: cf. v. 1; 2 Kgs 23:13-
14), relief images (tykwm: cf. v. 1; Num 33:52), incense altars (NmH
here; 2 Chr 14:4; 34:4, 7; Ezek 6:4, 6), altars for animal sacrifice
(Hbzm: cf. Ezek 6:4-6), and a special chamber (hkwl: cf. 1 Sam 9:22).
Not all high places were illegitimate. Some were legitimately involved
in worship recognized by Yahweh (cf. 1 Sam 9:11-25; 1 Kgs 3:2-15).
1 Paul and Dever, Biblical Archaeology, p. 63. See, ibid., pp.
61-65; TDOT, s.v. "hmABA," by K.-D. Schunck, 2:139-45; W. Boyd Barrick,
"The Funerary Character of 'High-Places' in Ancient
sessment," VT 25 (1975):565-95; Zimmerli, Ezekiel 1, p. 186. There
are only two references in the Pentateuch to high places: here and Num
33:52. Deuteronomy has no reference to the cultic high places. Deuter-
onomy may employ Mvqm "place" instead (cf. Deut 12:3). See, Paul and
Dever, Biblical Archaeology, p. 65.
119
Leviticus 26:30, however, hmb occurs in close relation to NmH which
always occurs elsewhere in relation to idolatrous worship (Isa 17:8;
27:9; Ezek 6:4, 6; 2 Chr 14:4; 34:4, 7).
NmH generally has been interpreted as an object utilized in sun
worship.1 However, recent consensus is that it was an incense stand
or altar:
According to II Chronicles 34:4, its place was on the altar and thus
it could not be very large. Its connection with incense was veri-
fied by the appearance of the word in a number of Nabatean and Pal-
myrean inscriptions, one of which is engraved on a small altar whose
other side contains a bas-relief of two figures burning incense.
Excavations at
cup-shaped upper portion bears traces of fire; plausibly these,
too, may be classified as examples of a hanmian.2
Confusion over the term evidently arose arly since the Septuagint uti-
lized five different terms to translate the eight occurrences of NmH:
bde<lugma "abomination" (Isa 17:8), ei@dwlon "idol" (Isa 27:9; 2 Chr
14:4), to> cu<linon xeiropoi<hton "carved wooden image" (Lev 26:30), te<menoj
"sacred precinct/grove/temple"3 (Ezek 6:4, 6), and u[yhlo<j "high place"
(2 Chr 34:4, 7).4 The daughter versions of the Septuagint employ te<menoj
in Isaiah 27:9,5 although
1 BDB, p. 329; cf. Keil and Delitzsch, Pentateuch, 2:475; Edward
J. Young, The Book of Isaiah, 3 vols. (
Publishing Company, 1965-72), 1:471 (but see translation of Isa 17:8 on
p. 468!); Charles Lee Feinberg, The Prophecy of Ezekiel: The Glory of
the Lord (Chicago: Moody Press, 1969), pp. 40-41.
2 Paul and Dever, Biblical Archaeology, p. 61. Cf. Wenham, Levi-
ticus, p. 332; Zimmerli, Ezekiel 1, p. 186; KB, p. 311; TDOT, s.v.
"hmABA," by K.-D. Schunck, 2:143.
3 LSJ, p. 1774.
4 Hatch and Redpath, eds., Concordance, 2:1419c, lists the text of
this occurrence as doubtful.
5 Ibid., 2:1345a.
120
Ezekiel 6:4, 6.1 The correlation with sun worship appears to stem
from Rashi's comment: Nydymfmw wyyfv tvggh lf Nydymfmw Mybk yk tdvbf Nym
MynmH Nyyvrq hmHb "a kind of idol (celestial) which was stood upon the
roofs and because these were stood in the sun (hmH) they were called
solar columns2 (MynmH)."3
From 30b through 32b there appears to be a change of form from
the simplicity of 30a. There are a series of corresponding lines with
the following pattern:
30b and 31a: Ntn + object + adverbial modifier
30c and 31c: conceptual: divine displeasure, lfg "despise" and
Hvr xl "do not smell/delight in"
31b and 32a: Mmw "devastate" + object
32b: a summarizing line picking up the assonance of the
preceding correspondence by employing Mmw
Ntn as a wqtl in the first person singular has not been employed
in this pericope since verse 19.4 There it was used to negate its first
use in verse 4: the rain-giver would give iron heavens and a brazen
earth. Here it is used to negate its second use in verse 6: the peace-
giver would give war and its results, many corpses. It may also be con-
sidered as a negation of the third employment of Ntn in verse 11: the
presence-giver would not despise
their rejection of his presence by their idols (lvlg), he would despise
them (lfg, v. 30c). With this latter negation, the chastisement has
1 Reider, Index to-Aquila, pp. 165, 236, 278. Contra Hatch and
Redpath, eds., Concordance, 2:1345a.
2 Jastrow, Dictionary, 1:478, where it is suggested that it was
probably a phallus. Targum Onqelos translates NmH with xysnsynH "obscene
statuary devoted to the Sun" (ibid., 1:483).
3 wmvH, p. 139.
4 See above, p. 101.
121
come full cycle from the first stage where the first negative Ntn was
used likewise to contrast the third beneficial use: Yahweh's presence
would be manifested in judgment and destruction rather than in blessing
and security.
The double employment of rgp in 3-b is a bone of contention.
Out of its twenty-two occurrences in the Old Testament, rgp definitely
refers to a dead body, "corpse," nineteen times. However, in Leviticus
26:30 and Ezekiel 43:7, 9, there is the possibility that the meaning
"stela" is to be understood.1 Since it occurs twice in Leviticus 26:30
(yrgp-lf Mkyrgp), the phraseology might be a sophisticated paronomasia:
"your corpses upon lifeless (corpselike) stelas."2 There seems to be
some evidence that Ugaritic pgr has the meaning "stela."3
In any case, all three Old Testament situations (Lev 26:30; Ezek 43:7,
9) involve deceased individuals. Therefore, it may be possible only to
claim that the use in Leviticus 26:30 demonstrates that the Myrgp are
lifeless like the corpses. The phrase Mkylvlg yrgp "corpses(?) of your
images" leads one "to think of human or animal-shaped images"4 for the
1 TDOT, S.V. "hmABA," by K.-D. Schunck, 2:142; UT, p. 466 (§19.
2005); David Neiman, "PGR: A Canaanite Cult-Object in the Old Testa-
ment," JBL 67 (1948):55-60. The Syro-Hexapla translates:
"and I shall blot out/efface your
handmade ‘idols upon the corpses’ of your idols" (Voobus, Syro-Hexapla,
plate 100, line 11). The first term for "idol" is Aramaic (=hdybf),
"corpse" is Greek (=kw?lon, the Septuagint's translation of rgp in Lev
26:30), and the second term for "idol" is Sanskrit (cf. J. Payne Smith,
ed., A Compendious Syriac Dictionary [reprint ed.,
Press, 1967], p. 471).
2 Cf. the NIV.
3 In addition to n. 1, above, see Weinfeld, Deuteronomy and the
Deuteronomic School, p. 125 n. 4.
4 Zimmerli, Ezekiel 1, p. 187.
122
Mylvlg. Thirty-nine of the forty-eight Old Testament uses of lvlg are
in Ezekiel. The term occurs in Deuteronomy 29:16 (Palestinian Covenant)
of Egyptian idols. The term is quite often associated with uncleanness
(xmF: Ezek 18:5-15; 20:7-39; 22:3-4; 23:7, 30, 37-39; 33:25-26;
36:18, 25; 37:23) and abomination (bft: 1 Kgs 21:26; 2 Kgs 21:11;
Ezek 6:4-13; 8:10-13; 14:3-7; 16:36; 18:5-15; 20:4-8; 22:2-4;
23:36-37; 33:25-26). This association in scripture "indicates an
essential feature of impurity."1 In fact, it appears that "the word
may then be a term of reproach, 'things of dung,' which is vocalized
similarly to Mycvqw ['detested things']"2 which is employed in close
relation to Mylvlg in Deuteronomy 29:16, 2 Kings 23:24, Ezekiel 20:7-8,
and 37:23. The Mylvlg are plainly images, not buildings nor high
places (though they were evidently found on the high places, cf. Ezek
33:25).3
Within the context of Leviticus 26, it is significant that the
Mylvlg are specified since they occur elsewhere with concepts important
to this pericope: corpses (rgp: Ezek 6:4-5; llH: 6:4, 13), aromatic4
offerings (HHyn Hyr: 6:13; 20:28), cannibalism (23:'37), Yahweh's fury
(hmH: 20:8, 13, 33, 34), nonobservance of the sabbath (20:12-13, 16,
19; 23:38), and dispersion (hrz: 36:19). Other examples could be
added to these (e.g., rejection of Yahweh's revelation and the subse-
1 TDOT, s.v. "MyliUl.Gi," by H. D. Preuss, 3:1-5.
2 Zimmerli, Ezekiel 1, p. 187.
3
a brief bibliography of those commentators who interpret the Mylvlg as
structures (ibid., p. 104 n. 25).
4 Or, pleasing/delightful. This concept stands in stark contrast
to the concept embodied in lvlg (detestable/impure/dunglike).
123
quent defilement of Yahweh's sanctuary; on the latter, cf. Lev 26:2),
but these will suffice to demonstrate the common contexts and the close
relation of Leviticus 26 and Ezekiel's prophecies.1
Having established the concepts of rgp and lvlg in 30b and
having discussed the phraseology of 30c,2 the following translation of
30bc may be offered: "and I shall put (Ntn) your corpses upon the life-
less forms of your filthy idols because my soul despises you."
Verse 31 reads: "and I shall give (Ntn) your cities to the
sword (brH) and I shall devastate (MMw Hip’il) your sanctuaries3
(wdqm)." The besieged nation not only would have their idolatries
destroyed and their bodies strewn over their idols (30ab), they would
have their cities destroyed by the conquering armies who would wreck
their sanctuaries (30c). Since the high places seem to have been
located mainly outside the cities, the description commences with that
which the armies would first encounter and destroy: the cultic instal-
lations. This could be accomplished in full view of the inhabitants
of the cities who would watch these proceedings from the walls.4 Hav-
ing been humiliated and disheartened, the besieged cities would then
suffer the full brunt of the siege machines and repeated attacks, con-
centrating on weak places in the cities' defences. When the breach was
made in the wall of the besieged city, the invading armies would work
1 See above, pp. 2 (quote from Hillers), 11 n. 2, and 20 n. 2.
Cf. Wenham, Leviticus, p. 330.
2 See above, pp. 72-73 (wpn hlfg).
3 See above, pp. 30-31 ("sanctuaries," plural).
4 Paul and Dever, Biblical Archaeology, pp. 63-64. Cf. 1 Sam
9:14, 25; 1 Kgs 23:8. The high places (and, other cultic installations)
were outside the city walls from which they could be seen.
124
from street to street, house to house, eliminating resistance, pillag-
ing, raping, and destroying until the city itself was burned and pulled
down. The central areas of the city, usually on a prominence, contained
the sanctuary (or, sanctuaries). These might be the last to fall, but
they would be destroyed. The enemy sword would conquer; Yahweh had
decreed it.
Corresponding to 30c ("because my soul despises you") is 31c:
"because I do not smell (i.e., delight in) your appeasing aromas." The
assonance of this phrase is unmistakeable with its repetitious ‘Hy’.
The verb is probably a denominative (from Hvr). It is a Hip’il yqtl
(a negative precedes the verb) expressing the concept of producing
ease/soothing/appeasement/delight.2 HHyn (from Hvn "rest") is used in
the Old Testament only in the combination HHyn Hyr "appeasing aroma,"
forty-three times in the Hebrew (an Aramaic form, HvHyn, occurs twice
without Hyr: Dan 2:46 and Ezra 6:10).3 "From an offering there
ascends to deity an 'appeasing aroma' and it thus brings the relation-
ship between mankind and god into order."4 This combination in the
Hebrew is found only four times outside the Pentateuch, all four in
Ezekiel (6:13; 16:19; 20:28, 41).5 A variation on the origin and
1 GKC, p. 145 (§53g).
2 BDB, pp. 924-26; KB, p. 877.
3 BDB, p. 1102; KB, p. 1100.
4 "Vom Opfer her steigt ein 'Beschwichtigungsgeruch' zur Gott-
heit auf and bringt so das Verhaltnis zwischen Mensch and Gott in Ord-
nung." THAT, s. v. “Hvn,“ by F. Stolz, 2:46.
5 The recurrence of Ezekiel chapters 6 and 20 (also, chapters 5
and 14-15) demonstrates their value in coming to an understanding of
Leviticus 26.
125
meaning of the combination was offered by A. S. Yahuda:
HHyn Gen. 8, 21 and many other passages for want of a better ety-
mology is generally derived from Hvn 'rest', despite the impossible
form HHyn, and we are still left without a clear conception of what
the word really means. In reality it is the Egyptian nhh (=HHn), a
quite common word for 'eternity' used in profane and especially in
sacred writings in connexion with sacrifices, libations, offerings,
holy foundations, and in benedictory formulas for the eternal sal-
vation of a god, a king, or a dead person. The customary sacri-
ficial formulae HaHoyni Hayre thus means 'savour for eternity' or 'eter-
nal savour'. It was particularly because of the use in Egyptian of
nhh in ritual matters that HHyn was thought suitable to be used in
kindred sacrificial texts, and this the explanation of its appear-
ance as a specific expression in the terminology of the sacrificial
cult in the Pentateuch. . . . This word remained, like other Egyp-
tian borrowings in the Pentateuch, peculiar to ancient use, and did
not pass into the ordinary literary language.1
In either case, the concept is that of acceptability of the sacrifice
by the deity smelling its aroma. Yahweh refused to accept the sacrifices of a
disobedient people (cf. 1 Sam 15:22; Jer 7:22-23; Mic 6:6-8; Prov 21:3).
Verse 32 completes the picture of devastation: "thus I myself
(ynx) shall devastate (Mmw Hip’il, cf. 31b) the land so that your ene-
mies who live in it shall be appalled (Mmw Qal) at it."2 There is a
threefold emphasis in this verse: (1) The first person (especially the
emphatic personal pronoun in 32a) gives additional emphasis to Yahweh's
personal participation in the chastisement which has reached such a
frightful climax. (2) The verb root Mmw; provides a connection with the
same root in 31b and provides an emphatic assonance in this climactic
verse, emphasizing the concept of devastation. (3) The final line (32b)
1 A.
Egyptian, 2 vols. (London: Oxford University Press, 1933), 1:269-70.
It should be noted that neither Jouon (Grammaire, p. 198 [§88G]) nor GKC
(pp. 232 [§84au], 234 [§84bk-m1), provide an equivalent noun derivation
for HHyn.
2 See above, p. 120, for the presentation of the place of 32a
and 32b in the pattern of vv. 30b-32.
126
gives threefold attention to the enemy: third masculine plural verb,
subject (byx "enemy"), and appositional participle (bwy "resident").
Yahweh, devastation, and enemy residents are all one to disobedient
of perdition. It is significant that the enemies are appalled, not
Her devastation shall be a witness to the nations that Yahweh will not
countenance breach of covenant.
Dispersion (exile) (v. 33)
Verse 33's initial conjunction should be treated as an adversa-
tive because of the preverbal position of emphasis taken by the direct
object: "but you yourselves (Mktx) I shall disperse (hrz Pi’el) among
the nations." The dispersion (hrz) is yet another subject common to
this pericope and key chapters in Ezekiel (e.g., 5:2, 10, 12; 6:8;
12:14, 15; 20:23). Thus, at Sinai, prior to entering the land cove-
nanted to Abraham, Yahweh warned
in the experience of landedness. Dispersion would be the ultimate dis-
ruption of that complacency. If the nation would behave in apathy
toward Yahweh and his covenants (especially the Abrahamic and Mosaic),
they would suffer landlessness again. They would return to the bondage
out of which Yahweh originally delivered them. The return to bondage
1 MMw "devastate" has the concept of "appalled" in its semantic
range. It basically relates to having one's confidence or state of well
being destroyed/devastated. MMw "appalled" is never used of
nation in the Old Testament regarding what Yahweh had done to them in
judgment. Ezek 4:17 presents the picture of being appalled at the phy-
sical appearance of fellow starvees. Jer 4:9 depicts only the priests
as being appalled. Ezra 9:3 describes Ezra as being appalled at the
mixed marriages of his day. Ezek 4:17, therefore, would be the closest
to
the one effect of judgment, starvation).
127
might be a cure for their amnesia. "It is hard enough for landed
people to believe land will be lost. It is harder to imagine Yahweh
will do it"1 (cf. Lev 26:32a, 33a). It is yet more difficult to deal
with the revelation that "you (yes, you)" are the exiled.
"Yea, I shall unsheath (qyr Hip’il) the sword (brH) behind you
(MkyrHx).” In all four instances in the Old Testament where the idiom
yrHx brH qyrh "unsheath the sword behind" occurs (here; Ezek 5:2, 12;
12:14) it is preceded by the employment of hrz "disperse" and it is
always a reference to
in three other passages but always in reference to Yahweh's judgment of
a nation outside
28:7), never with yrHx “behind" (cf. lf "over/against" in Ezek 28:7
and 30:11, and no preposition in Exod 15:9), and never following hrz
"disperse." This idiom, in this set context, is reserved for Yahweh's
dealing with
hostility. He will place the sword "behind"
hand, they would be fleeing, and, on the other hand, the path of return
would be blocked by the divine sword. Shades of
were prevented reentry to
(Gen 3:24).
covenant sword of Yahweh himself'.
The summation of deportation is in 33b: "thus your land shall
be (hyh) for devastation (hmmw) and your cities shall be (hyh) for the
sword." The simplicity of statement is self-evident. The alternation
of qtl and yqtl (of hyh) is characteristic.2 The h A of both substan-
1 Brueggemann, The Land, p. 113.
2 See above, pp. 73-74.
128
tives is clearly assonant.1 The land and the cities would be appointed
by Yahweh for devastation and death (the sword). This statement, in
its conceptualization (if not its syntax), corresponds to the earlier
statement of formal appointment under blessing:
Mfl yl vyht Mtxv | Myhlxl Mkl ytyyhv -12b
and you yourselves shall be my so that I shall be your god
people
hbrH vyhy Mkyrfv | hmmw Mkycrx htyhv -33b
and your citiees shall be for thus your land shall be for
the sword devastation
The two deviations from strict correspondence in these two statements
are instructive: (1) The circumlocution for the possessives "your"
(Mkl) and "my" (yl) in 12b was employed to emphasize the identification
in the relationship. (2) The specified subject (Crx "land") in 33b
may be an allusion to Genesis 1:2 (vhbv vht Crxh htyhv "and the earth
was empty and void"). Such an allusion could serve three purposes:
(1) to remind
of all the earth; (2) to emphasize the totality of the dispersion: the
land would be without inhabitants; and, (3) to imply that the disper-
sion was but the commencement of something new which Yahweh would do.
1 The assonance could be more than elevated style. The suffix
may have been assimilated by the feminine ending of hmmw, indicating
that hbrH may not have been a simple assonant conformity. Each sub-
stantive may have possessed this suffix for a syntactical purpose. Could the
concept be a more formal usage of the h-directive (i.e., for appointment or decree)
than is recognized by the grammars? The sense (see translation above) of being
"for" something is certainly intended by the phraseology and the immediate
context. When it is viewed in relation to 12b (see above), one would ask: Is h a in
33b the equivalent to l in l2b? That would indicate that the syntactical structure of
12b is conducive to that meaning. The question is whether the suffix is a contributing factor to that meaning. If it is, then that form could technically be
given that additional possibility in usage, regardless of the failure of the grammars
to recognize it and classify its function in the past. To this writer, this alternative
seems more consistent with the Hebrew than to explain the h on brH as a poetic
ornation (cf. GKC, p. 250 [§90f]; Davidson, Syntax, p. 99 [§69 R 2]).
129
The possibility of an allusion to Genesis 1:2 in Leviticus
26:33b is noteworthy for several reasons: (1) It is recognized that
"the thought of God's activity as Creator and Giver in the berit . . . .
with the prophets--and even in P [including Leviticus 26] as well--was
definitely primary."1 (2) Jeremiah 4:23 employs the very terms of
Genesis 1:2 (vhbv vht "empty and void") to describe the
following judgment.2 (3) It is recognized also that "exile is the way
to new life in new land."3
Desertion of the land (vv. 34-38)
The sabbath rest (vv. 34-35). The following pattern of corres-
pondences and emphatic logical development occurs in these verses:
34a: a1 : b1
34b: b2 : a2
35 b1 : a3 : b3
Main clauses (a):
hyttbw -tx Crxh hcrt zx –a1
then the land shall enjoy the restitution of its sabbaths
hyttbw -tx hcrhv Crxh tbwt zx -a2
then the land shall rest, yea, it shall enjoy the restitution of
its sabbaths
Mkyttbwb htbw-xl rwx tx tbwt -a3
it shall rest on account of your sabbaths in which it did not rest
1 Eichrodt, Theology, 1:63. The liberal theologians' ascription
of the creation narratives to "P" cannot be accepted but their association
of the two bodies of literature is important to recognize and the reason
for the biblical association must be sought in order not to miss the
intended message therein. Cf.
2 A significant reference to the "presence" of Yahweh in judgment
may be seen in Jer 4:26b if hvhy ynpm "from the presence of Yahweh" can
be interpreted thus (in spite of the bound form ynpm "from before": cf.
the next phrase in that context).
3 Brueggemann, The Land, p. 122. Cf. Jer 24:4-10.
130
Temporal clauses (b)
hmwh ymy lk -b1
all the days of its devastation
Mkybyx Crx-b Mtx---v -b2
while you are in the land of your enemies
hmwh ymy lk -b1
all the days of its devastation
hylf Mktbwb -b3
while you were dwelling upon it
This schematization of the two verses helps to demonstrate the follow-
ing: (1) The triple chiasmus and the repetition of b1 keep the temporal
clauses together in order to emphasize the time factor in these verses.
(2) The repetition of 11-10 "sabbath/rest" adds the element of cult1 and
emphasizes the sabbatical element which had already been presented as
a precept in verse 2. (3) By utilizing Crx "land" as the subject of all
three main clauses, the centrality of the land and its relationship to
the sovereign decrees of Yahweh are emphasized. (4) The theological
equivalence of hcr "enjoy" and tbw "rest" are demonstrated. Indeed,
verse 34b is transitional, employing the epexegetical waw to join these
two terms in the middle member of the construction. It should be noted
that verse 34a employs hcr while verse 35 employs only tbw, having made
the full transition.
The initial zx "then" of verse 34 sets that verse apart from
the preceding context. Since the pericope evidences an elevated style
of literature, perhaps zx serves, as it does sometimes in poetry, "to
throw emphasis on a particular feature of the description."2 If this
1 Cult is used here only in the sense of a system of religious
beliefs and ritual. Nothing pagan, faddish, or mystical is intended by
it.
2 BDB, p. 23.
131
is the case, that which is emphasized would be the land's hcr. hcr is
variously interpreted "enjoy"1 and "make or obtain restitution."2 The
adversely negative concept of "making restitution" would involve the
land in the guilt of the Israelites by the nonobservance of the sabbati-
cal year. This does not appear to be likely since the whole context
appears to make hcr practically equivalent to tbw.3 The beneficial con-
cept of "obtaining restitution" could be the basis for the enjoyment or
rest for the land, however. The land would be "pleased" as a result of
receiving "its due portion."4 That due portion is defined as "its sab-
baths." When will the reception of the due portion be accomplished?
The context answers, "all the days of its devastation/desolation."5
The employment of Mmw "devastate" ties verses 34-35 to the preceding
context and its use of the same root to describe the devastation wrought
by Yahweh in covenant vengeance (vv. 31-32). The devastation will bring
about the sabbatical rest which it had been denied under
"Then (zx) the land shall enjoy the restitution of (hcr)6 its sabbaths
(tbw) all the days of its devastation (Mmw) while you are7 in the land
1 Cf. ASV, NASB, NIV, Septuagint, Targum Onqelos, Syriac, Latin.
2 Cf. BDB, p. 953 (the land makes the restitution); KB, p. 906
(Qal=obtain restitution, HipCil=make restitution); Elliger, Leviticus,
p. 377; NASB margin (make restitution, "satisfy").
3 See above, p. 130, (4).
4 "Ihm gebuhrenden Anteil annehmen." THAT, s.v. " hcr," by G.
Gerleman, 2:811.
5 See above, pp. 31-32, re: hmwh.
6 The italicized words are supplied here to help bring out the
full scope of hcr. This form of notation is employed to contrast it
with the underscoring, employed here for emphasis. hcr is a Qal here.
7 Are is supplied since it is understood by grammar. The per-
sonal pronoun as the subject is the grammatical key.
132
of your enemies. Then (zx)1 the land shall rest (tbw); yea,2 it shall
enjoy the restitution of (hcr)3 its sabbaths (tbw)” (v. 34).
"It4 shall rest (tbw)5 all the days of its devastation (Mmw) on
account of6 your sabbaths (tbw) in which7 it did not rest (tbw) while
you were dwelling (bwy)8 upon it" (v. 35). As the devastation was a
necessity due to the defilement of the land, so also the "expulsion of
books of Deuteronomy, Jeremiah, and Ezekiel the concept that "cultic
sins alone determine the nation's collapse."10 Idolatry (Lev 26:1) and
the sabbatical system (vv. 2, 34-35) are specified here as the key
1 Note the recurrence of this emphatic particle. This is an
additional argument for the equivalency of hcr and tbw since the sen-
tences are equivalent in syntax and concept.
2 Emphatic or explicative waw. Cf. GKC, p. 484 (§154a n. 1).
3 Hip’il qtl is employed here in contrast to Qal yqtl in the pre-
ceding phrase. The alternation of tenses is characteristic of the ele-
vated style of the pericope. For the MT form (third feminine singular),
see GKC, p. 210 (§75m).
4 The subject is contained in the verb and is understood, by the
nearest antecedent in agreement, to be the land.
5 The yqtl is employed here.
6 For this employment of b, see BDB, p. 90 (III.5). The causal
usage rather than temporal may be an explanation for the position of
Mkyttbwb. See GKC, p. 457 (§142g).
7 rwx "which" is preceded by tx, making it the object of the pre-
ceding verb. Due to the intransitive English rendering of tbw, the
preposition must be supplied.
8 Infinitive construct with b. See GKC, p. 503 (§164g). Note
the sibilant + labial assonance between bwy and tbw.
9 Hans Eberhard von Waldow, "
cal Considerations,". in A Light Unto My Path: Old Testament Studies in
Honor of Jacob M. Myers, ed. Howard N. Bream, et al. (
10 EJ, s.v. "Leviticus, Book of," by Jacob Milgrom, 11:147.
133
areas of disobedience. Of these two, the sabbatical principle receives
the greater emphasis in the context of Leviticus 26. The reference in
2 Chronicles 36:20-21 likewise emphasizes this principle as the cause
of the Babylonian exile:
And the remnant from the sword (brH) were carried away unto
so that for him [the king of
servants until the rule of the
of Yahweh through Jeremiah might be fulfilled until the land enjoyed
the restitution of (hcr Qal qtl) its sabbaths (tbw). All the days
of its devastation (Mmw) it rested (tbw qtl), so that seventy years
might be fulfilled (xlm).
This raises the problem of dependency and identification of the
source which was employed by the chronicler. The following observations
aid in establishing the relationships between the chronicler, Jeremiah,
and Leviticus 26: (1) Nowhere in 2 Chronicles 36:21 is there a claim
that it is a quotation from Jeremiah. (2) "Until the land enjoyed the
restitution of its sabbaths" is an adverbial modifier of "might be ful-
filled," not the direct object. (3) "Seventy years" is the direct object
of the second "might be fulfilled." (4) "Seventy years," therefore , is
the content of the concept taken from Jeremiah. (5) Jeremiah does give
prophetic announcements of a seventy-year Babylonian captivity (Jer
25:11-12 and 29:10). (6) Both passages in Jeremiah employ xlm "fulfills"
which is employed twice in 2 Chronicles 36:21. However, only the second
use in 2 Chronicles would be influenced by the vocabulary of Jeremiah.
(7) The phraseology (primarily with respect to grammar) in 2 Chronicles
36:21 is distinctly different from both Leviticus 26:34 and Jeremiah
25:11-12 and 29:10.1 (8) No indication is given that Jeremiah associated
1 The qtl of hcr after the temporal particle df "until" in 2 Chr
36:21 is unlike the style of Leviticus 26 (including v. 34). Likewise,
the qtl of tbw after the temporal phrase hmwh ymy-lk "all the days of
its devastation" is unlike Lev 26:34-35. Jeremiah's use of xlm are both
134
Leviticus 26:34 with his prophecies. (9) The chronicler alone associ-
ated the "seventy years" of Jeremiah with "until the land enjoyed the
restitution of its sabbaths." Furthermore, this association was purely
one of concepts, not quotations.1 (10) The association does not claim
that the seventy years is an exact accounting of sabbatical years and/or
jubilee years unobserved by
need not be restricted to the annual sabbaths since the term is not
thus defined (especially in Lev 26:2). The association made by the
chronicler is between a statement of the chronological extent of the
exile ("seventy years") and a statement of the theological nature of
the exile ("the land enjoying the restitution of its sabbaths"). The
attempt to account for exactly seventy years of sabbatical and jubilee
years is an exercise in scripture silence and is susceptible to too many
unknown factors (e.g., the number of times
observations and the terminuses of the Babylonian exile period itself).2
The stricken remnant (vv. 36-38). This section is divided into
two parts: (1) verses 36-37a, highlighted by the third person plural
referring to the remnant, and (2) verses 37b-38, highlighted by the
second person plural referring to the exiles.
infinitive constructs, but not in a result clause as in 2 Chr 36:21 (Jer
25:12 employs tvxlmk) as a temporal clause; 29:10 employs txlm ynpl, also
as a temporal clause).
1 The latter phrase, therefore, is not "taken word for word from
Lev. xxvi. 34" (C. F. Keil, The Books of the Chronicles, trans. Andrew
Harper, in Biblical Commentary on the Old Testament [reprint ed., Grand
Rapids: Wm. B. Eerdmans Publishing Company, 19681, p. 514). In addi-
tion, the phrase would be taken from v. 35, not v. 34.
2 For an example of such mathematical guesswork, see Rashi's
comments.
135
The first phrase of verse 36 is an accusative casus pendens
(i.e., accusative absolute) serving to isolate and give marked promi-
nence to the object of the sentence.1 This construction separates this
section from the previous verses. The prominent topic, therefore, is
"those who are left from among2 you" (Mkb Myrxwnh). This emphasized
object is resumed in the pronominal suffixes attached to bbl ("in their
heart") and byx ("their enemies").3 The employment of wqtl (rather than
yqtl) serves to heighten the emphasis.4 "As for5 those who are left
from among you, I shall bring timidity (jrm)6 into their heart in the
lands of their enemies." The timidity is subsequently described in
view of the result it has in the lives of the remnant: "the sound of a
driven leaf (Jdn hlf lvq)7 shall pursue them; yea,8 they shall flee as
in flight from the sword (brH-tsnm vsnv)9 and they shall fall without a
pursuer (Jdr Nyxv)."10 A panic would come about merely from the rustling
1 GKC, p. 458 (9143c).
2 The context requires a partitive expression in the receptor lan-
guage. "Left of you" is too ambiguous in the receptor language.
3 This is the retrospective pronominal suffix.
4 GKC, p. 458 (§143d) .
5 "As for" best represents the concept of the casus pendens. This
overrides the waw "and" since the conjunction becomes superfluous.
6 The noun jrm is a hapax legomenon.
7 Elliger, Leviticus, p. 377: "raschelndes Laub" ("rustling
leaf").
8 Explicative (epexegetical) waw.
9 The cognate accusative (hsnm svn) strengthens the concept of the
verb and is itself strengthened by its construct relation to brH. Cf.
Davidson, Syntax, pp. 96-97 (§67(b)).
10 See above, pp. 59-60, 97.
136
of leaves. Every ear of the remnant would be straining to catch the
slightest sound as they fearfully wait for enemies to ambush them.
Every nerve would be so shattered1 that cowardice2 would reign as the
entire group attempts to escape the imagined approach of the sword.
As they flee, they shall fall.
They shall fall "because3 each man shall stumble over another
(vyHxb wyx)4 as before the sword (brH-ynpmk) except there shall be no
one pursuing (Nyx Jdrv)5" (v. 37a). In their haste to flee, they would
stumble over each other so that they fall to the ground. Not only would
this wreak havoc with the trampling of the fallen, but it would also
add to the great humiliation which they already bore. They had been
defeated by a nonexistent enemy and would fall over their own soldiers.
A stampede initiated by a stirring leaf would bring down the stumbling
remnant. By idolatry and sabbath breaking,
that their faith had turned to folly. That folly would be punished by
Yahweh placing an inordinate fear in their hearts. That fear would
result in a disastrous and unfounded flight.
1 Cf. Targum Onqelos for jrm: xrbt "breaking/shattering."
2 Cf. Septuagint for jrm: deili<a "cowardice" (cf. the only New
Testament employment of deili<a, 2 Tim 1:7).
3 GKC, p. 492 (§158a).
4 Or, "they shall stumble over one another." GKC, p. 448 (§139e).
5 Note the reversal of the order of vv. 6, 17, and 36b. This
order indicates a verbal predicate rather than a negated substantive.
See GKC, p. 480 (§152k-1). Such a noun-clause may be taken as circum-
stantial-contradictory. See GKC, p. 453 (§141e). "Except" may also
be translated "although."
137
Verses 36-37a are marked by the following forms of assonance:
Jdr . . . Jdr . . , Jdn . . . Jdrv
tsnm . . . vsnv
vlwkv . . . vlpnv . . . vsnv
Nyx Jdrv . . . Jdr Nyxv
The assonance, the conciseness, and the subject matter are reminiscent
of the "taunt-song" (lwm)1 best exemplified by Isaiah 14:4, Micah 2:4,
and Habakkuk 2:6.2 These three taunt-songs exhibit the following char-
acteristics: assonance, conciseness, third person grammar (verbs and
pronouns) in a second person context, judgment theme, an interrogative
(jyx "How?" in Isa 14:4 and Mic 2:4; ytm-df "How long?" in Hab 2:6),
and introduced as lwm "proverb/taunt-song." Leviticus 26:36-37a con-
tains all but the last two characteristics. Since the three key exam-
ples are from the prophets, perhaps this early similarity was a proto-
type. Deuteronomy 28:37 employs lwm in the context of the Palestinian
Covenant to describe how the nations would consider
been devastated by the judgment of Yahweh. In the same context, verse
25 (with yl hyh3) describes
1 Cf. BDB, p. 605.
2 George Buchanan Gray, A Critical and Exegetical Commentary on
Numbers, ICC (reprint ed.,
xiv, 344-45.
3 See above, p. 73 (v. 12b).
4 BDB, p. 266. Even more striking is the employment of l with
parallels of lwm in Jer 24:9 (hfvz, hfr "distress," hprH "reproach,"
lwm, hnynw "sharp word," hllq "curse") in a context with brH "sword,"
bfr "famine," and rbd "pestilence." Cf., also, Jer 29:18 (hfvz, hlx
"curse," hmw "appalment," hqrw "hissing," hprH), likewise in context
with brH, bfr, and rbd. The concepts are strikingly similar to both
Leviticus 26 and Deuteronomy 28 in these Jeremiah passages.
138
the nations (cf. hmwl hyh "be for an appalment," v. 37) in a context
dealing with their flight (svn, cf. Lev 26:36). Therefore, though the
form is not as developed as in the prophets, this researcher believes
that Leviticus 26:36-37a should be classified as a taunt-song.1
Turning from the remnant, verses 37b-38 describe the condition
of the exiles lest they forget their own dire predicament: "Nor shall
there be (hyht-xlv) any standing (hmvqt) for you (Mkl) before your
enemies." There is a very obvious correlation between the last word of
37a (Nyx "there shall be no") and the first construction of 37b (-xlv
hyht "nor shall there be"). It is an example of a carefully worded
transition, flipping from one subject to the next by means of the same
concept but employing different terminology.
hmvqt "standing," like jrm "timidity" in 36a, is a hapax legome-
non. The Targum of Onqelos (hmvqt) and the Syriac ( qwm ) both
employ the same semitic root (Mvq "stand") as the MT. However, the Tar-
gum's-term may mean "rising" or "preservation"2 while the Syriac may
mean "opposition."3 The Septuagint emphasizes the ability to stand (ou]
dunh<sesqe a]ntisth?nai. "you shall not be able to resist/stand against")
and the Vulgate bears the concept of bringing oneself to resist/oppose
(audebit resistere). In the
phrase employs dmfm "resistance."4 1QM xiv.8 is the nearest syntacti-
1 The relationship between Deut 28:25, 37 and Lev 26:36-37a is
further supported by the relationship between Deut 28:25 and Jer 34:17
(esp. hfvz) which is in a context concerning the breach of covenant by
that Leviticus 26:36-37a should be classified as a taunt-song.
2 Jastrow, Dictionary, 2:1690.
3 Smith, Syriac Dictionary, p. 495.
4 dmfm is never a synonym for hmvqt in the Old Testament. Cf.
BDB, p. 765.
139
cally: dmfm Nyx Mhyrvbg lvklv "and there is no resistance from any of
their mighty men/warriors."1 Lohse's translation of dmfm in 1QM xiv.8
is identical to Elliger's for hmvqt in Leviticus 26:37b, geben Stand-
halten "give resistance/resist."2 Therefore, the better translation
appears to be: "Nor shall there be any resistance by/from3 you in the
presence of (ynpl) your enemies."
The result of nonresistance is clear: "so that you shall per-
ish (dbx Qal) among the nations; yea, the land of your enemies shall
devour (lkx) you" (v. 38). This summation manifests brevity and simpli-
city like previous summations in Leviticus 26 (vv. 29, 33b).4 The mes-
sage is emphatic. There would be absolutely no escaping the judgment
of Yahweh. Perishing (dbx, cf. Deut 28:22, 63) and being devoured (lkx,
cf. Num 13:32 and Ezek 36:13-14 where land is the devourer) are parallel
concepts as are also the nations (Myvg) and the land of the enemies (Crx
Mybyx). It is not the
The infertility of
Nor, for that very fact, could the devouring refer to wars, depopulation,
drought, famine, or the chastisements of Yahweh.6 The context of Levi-
1 Lohse, Die Texte aus
13 and 1QH v.29.
2 Ibid., p. 213; Elliger, Leviticus, pp. 362, 377.
3 By opting for "resistance," the employment of l here may be more
than mere possession ("you shall not have standability"). It might be
a circumlocution of a genitive of means or source ("by/from you"). Cf.
GKC, p. 419 (§128x, §129a-b). By not placing the pronominal suffix on
hmvqt, the pronominal concept may be emphasized ("by/from you either").
4 See above, pp. 116, 126-29.
5 Cf. Gray, Numbers, p. 151.
6 Cf. Feinberg, Ezekiel, p. 207.
140
ticus 26:38b refers to the physical destruction so clearly that even
the concept of spiritual stumbling (becoming entangled in sins)1 must
be ruled out as a viable interpretation. "Their falling under the
pressure of the circumstances in which they were placed"2 is too vague.
What, then, is the meaning? The concept is that of the exiles vanish-
ing. They would be taken from the land Yahweh had given unto them,
would enter their enemies' land(s), and not return. They would die and
be decimated in a strange land (cf. Amos 7:17, "but you yourself shall
die upon unclean ground [or, in an unclean land, hxmF hmdx-lf) .
When Yahweh would bring them out of exile, they would be fewer in number
than when they went into captivity.4 Thus, this exile would not be like
the Egyptian bondage when the nation multiplied greatly (cf. Exod 1:7).
The entirety of the Abrahamic Covenant would be set aside in the exile
which would come upon
(1) possession of the land (Gen 12:1; 15:7, 18-21; 17:8) would
become dispossession of the land (Lev 26:33-38);
(2) national greatness (Gen 12:2) would become humiliation, inferi-
ority, and insignificance (Lev 26:29, 32, 36-37; Deut 28:43-44);
(3) blessing (Gen 12:2; 22:17) would become cursing (Lev 26:14-38;
Deut 28:15-68);
1 Cf. Carl Friedrich Keil, Biblical Commentary on the Prophecies
of Ezekiel, 2 vols., trans. James Martin, in Biblical Commentary on the
Old Testament (reprint ed.,
Company, 1968), 2:104-5.
2 Keil and Delitzsch, Pentateuch, 2:477.
3 Cf. the use of hmdx "land" in Amos 7:17 before and after this.
phrase.
4 The problems involved in the numbers of captives taken from the
land (cf. 2 Kgs 24:16; Jer 52:28-30) and the numbers of the returnees
(cf. Ezra 2:64-65; Neh 7:66-67) must be viewed in the light of the rem-
nant (cf. Ezra 1:4; Neh 1:2; Hag 2:3), the necessity of multiplication
in exile to survive (cf. Jer 29:6), the male census figures (cf. 2 Kgs
141
(4) being a blessing (Gen 12:2-3; 22:18) would become being a
cursing (Lev 26:32, 36-37a; Deut 28:25, 37);
(5) multiplication (Gen 12:2; 15:5; 17:4-6; 22:17) would become
diminution (Lev 26:22, 29, 38; Deut 28:18, 20-22, 53-57, 62);
and,
(6) success before the enemies (Gen 22:17) would become defeat by
the enemies (Lev 26:16-17, 32, 36-38; Deut 28:25, 31, 48, 52,
68).
Promise would be turned to privation. Covenant vengeance consisted of
the removal of all privileges and protection with all of the attendant
prosperity.
The Contingency: Repentance (vv. 39-45)
Divine retribution, according to verses 39-45, has the repent-
ance of Yahweh's covenant people as its ultimate goal (vv. 39-41).
Their repentance would allow the covenant relationship to be reinstated
or reactivated by Yahweh. The reactivation of the covenant must be
founded upon a clear understanding of the relationship to the land,
the sabbatical principle, and the recognition of guilt by the transgres-
sors (vv. 42-43). Thus the land and the people may be restored to a
right relationship with Yahweh, lord of the covenant. Above all else,
it must be remembered that Yahweh's covenant promise is sure. He
revealed his commitment to restoration in order to reassure his people
(vv. 44-45). Yahweh remains loyal to his covenant--even when his cove-
nanted people are disloyal.1
24:16; Jer 52:28-30), and the later deportations of over 100,000 left
in the land (cf. R. K. Harrison, Old Testament Times [
liam B. Eerdmans Publishing Company, 1970], p. 256; C. F. Keil, The
Prophecies of Jeremiah, 2 vols., trans. James Kennedy, in Biblical Com-
mentary on the Old Testament [reprint ed.,
Publishing Company, 1968], 2:330-31).
1 Cf. a similar concept in 2 Tim 2:13.
142
Repentance:
The same casus pendens employed in verse 36 is repeated here:
"As for those who are left from among you."1 The anguish (qqm)2 suf-
fered by the guilt-ridden Israelites is emphasized here. It had come
as a result of contemplating the reasons for their exile and the devas-
tation of their land. Ezekiel best described both the resulting cry of
the people in anguish and the answer of Yahweh to their cry:
Now you, O son of man, you say to the house of
speak: 'Our transgressions and our sins are upon us so that we are
being anguished (qqm) by them. Therefore, how shall we live?"'
Say to them: "'As surely as I live,' declares Lord Yahweh, 'I do
not delight in the death of the wicked, but rather in the turning
(or, repenting) of the wicked from his way so that he lives. Turn
(or, Repent)'. Turn from (or, Repent of) your ways, O wicked ones!
Yea, why will you die, O house of
Therefore, Leviticus 26:39a says of the remnant of
be anguished (qqm) by (or, because of) their guilt (Nvf)3 in the lands
of your enemies."4 While in exile, the disobedient nation would suffer
a terrible guilt trip which would cause them to despair of ever again
being able to live before Yahweh. "Yea, they also (Jxv)5 shall be
anguished (qqm) by the guilt (Nvf)6 of their fathers which7 shall be8
1 See above, p. 135.
2 Cf. BDB, p. 596; Zimmerli, Ezekiel 1, p. 170; Elliger, Levi-
ticus, p. 378.
3 Cf. BDB, pp. 730-31; THAT, s.v. "NOfA," by R. Knierim, 2:243-49.
4 See above, pp. 32-35.
5 See above, pp. 90-91.
6 Plural of intensity.
7 I.e., the guilt. Cf. Keil and Delitzsch, Pentateuch, 2:477.
The third masculine plural is in agreement with the plural of Nvf which
is irregular and takes a feminine ending in the plural (BDB, p. 730).
8 Supplied in agreement with the time element of the main verb
in the context.
143
with them" (39b). By moving the verb qqm from the first word in its
clause (39a) to the last word in its clause (39b), the emphasis upon
the anguish is continued. In 39b the preverbal adverbial phrases draw
attention to themselves: "by (or, because of) the guilt of their
fathers . . . with them." Rashi's explanation for this concept is
that "it means that the guilt of their fathers will be with them as
those who are holding fast to the practice of their fathers" (tvnvfwk
Mhydyb Mhytvbx hWfm MyzHvxwk Mtx Mtvbx).1 Various theologians
offer the explanation that corporate guilt (i.e., the concept of it) was
rigid in
maintained that the responsibility of the individual was ignored until
the exile during which it was demonstrated that Yahweh was concerned
more about the individual's guilt. This change in theology was to have
come about by experience and by the writings of the prophets.2 Usually,
therefore, Ezekiel 18 is praised as a new light for
teaches individual responsibility.
The anguish about which Leviticus 26:39b is concerned is that
caused by corporate guilt. It concerns the guilt of the fathers. How-
ever, 39a clearly established (before them mention of corporate guilt)
that
the generation of Israelites facing the day of retribution was also
guilty. This may not identify the individual per se, but it does dis-
tinguish the guilt of separate generations. This same principle of
distinguishing guilt also applies to the concept of individual guilt.
1 wmvH, p. 141.
2 Cf. Eichrodt, Theology, 2:413-43.
144
In Ezekiel's day and in Moses' day, the way out of the entrapment was
repentance (bvw, Ezek 33:11) or confession (hdy Hitpa’el, Lev 26:40a)
of personal and corporate guilt: "If1 they confess (hdy Hitpa’el)
their guilt (Nvf) and the guilt (Nvf) of their fathers" (40a). The
order is significant. Even though the corporate guilt had caused the
greatest anguish because of the "spectre of an irreversible destiny,"2
the reply of Yahweh was that the personal required attention first.
The now-generation guilt, as opposed to the past-generations guilt,
must be admitted if the repentance was to be genuine. This concept of
personal guilt does not require a post-exilic date for Leviticus 26,
any more than the emphasis on corporate guilt in Daniel 9:1-19 would
require a Mosaic date for the composition of that pericope.3 Corporate
guilt ceases to be a problem to the individual who has confessed his
own guilt. Corporate guilt is not a straight-jacket or a bottomless
pit. Escape from it is the same as for personal guilt: repentance. It
is not a destiny. It is a lesson. It is a lesson in the history of
the faith (or lack of faith). The covenant does not bring only blessing
to Abraham's seed. It can also bring cursing, depending on each genera-
tion's personal obedience or disobedience. Each generation has the same
opportunity to rid itself of a sordid history of disloyalty. Each has
the opportunity of being personally loyal to Yahweh of the covenant.
1 Cf . GKC, pp. 337 (§112kk-ll), 494 (§159g).
2 A. B. Davidson, The Theology of the Old Testament, ed. S. D. F.
Salmond, in The International Theological Library (reprint ed.,
T. & T. Clark, 1961), p. 222. Cf. Davidson's full discussion, pp. 217-27.
3 It is significant that the majority of Daniel's confession was
taken up with the "spectre" of corporate guilt. It is theologically
naive to date the writings of the Old Testament on a theoretical develop-
ment of thought moving from the corporate to the personal.
145
From 40b through 41b a parenthesis is encountered which serves
to explain the nature of the guilt and the reason for the nation thus
burdened:1 "because of2 their being unfaithful to me (yb-lfm rwx lfmb)3
and also because (rwx Jxv)4 they walked in opposition to me (Mf jlh
yrqb),5 I also (Jx)6 walked in opposition to them (yrqb Mf jlh)7 and I
brought (xvb Hip’il)8 them into the land of their enemies" (40b-41b) .
The only new terminology or concept presented in this parenthesis is
that of lfm, which may be translated "act unfaithfully."9 It was
employed of sacrilege in the case of Achan (Josh 7:1; cf. 22:20). It
was also used of the breach of vows (oaths or covenants; cf. Ezek 17:20;
Num 5:12).10 This latter concept appears to be that of Leviticus 26:40b,
1 Keil and Delitzsch, Pentateuch, 2:477.
2 Cf. BDB, p. 90 (111.5).
3 This construction is a cognate accusative with an internal ob-
ject (cf. GKC,. pp. 366-67 [§117p-q1). There is no retrospective pronom-
inal suffix and rwx introduces the relative clause acting as an attribute
for the preceding noun. Note the employment of qtl in the relative
clause. The emphasis of the expression could be rendered: "being trea-
sonously unfaithful."
4 rwx is taken here as causal (cf. BDB, p. 83) after the manner
of the Septuagint's o!ti.
5 The qtl may have been maintained as a fixed form for this par-
ticular phrase. Cf. vv. 23, 24, 27, 28. See below, n. 7.
6 See above, pp. 90, 107, 115.
7 The only occurrence of this idiom with the yqtl. It is particu-
larly significant since there is no waw involved either here or in the
immediately preceding employment of the phrase in 40b, which uses qtl.
When 41a is compared to 24a, it is clear that prepositive ynx-Jx is
responsible for the yqtl (with qtl in 24a it was postpositive).
8 Cf. vv. 25 and 36.
9 Cf . BDB, p. 591.
10 Zimmerli, Ezekiel 1, pp. 313-14.
146
which deals with covenant treason.1 Such a concept is also found in
its employment in Ezekiel 14:13, 15:8, 20:27, and Daniel 9:7.2 All
those contexts are similar to Leviticus 26 in both contents and con-
cepts.
The protasis begun in 40a (vdvthv "if they confess")3 is
resumed here by means of a dual particle construction containing the
conditional vx "if/whether" together with the temporal zx "then":4
"If then (zx-vx) their uncircumcised heart (lrfh bbl) is humbled (fnk)
and then (zxv) they make restitution (hcr)5 for their guilt (Nvf)6”
(41cd). The temporal reference is after the exile and at the time of
their confession of guilt. This is the result of Yahweh's working in
their heart (cf. v. 36a) while they are in exile. Exile would strip
the nation of all pretense of being spiritual. Exile would be the
irrefutable evidence that they were displeasing to Yahweh.
The covenant Lord demands heart-consecration which reflects the
fulfillment of the consecration sworn in the circumcision oath.
Circumcision is an oath-rite. To be uncircumcised would be to
place oneself outside the juridical authority of Yahweh and a
refusal to consign oneself to the ordeal of the Lord's judgment
for the final verdict on one's life--eternal weal or woe.7
1 Zimmerli, Ezekiel 1, p. 366.
2 See above, p. 144. Cf. Dan 9:4-5 (confession, covenant, com-
mandments, guilt, unfaithfulness), 11-14 (Palestinian Covenant!), 15
(exodus history = covenant formula), 16 (guilt of the fathers).
3 See above, p. 144.
4 See above, pp. 129-32 (zx); also, pp. 35-38
5 See above, pp. 129-32 (hcr) .
6 See above, pp. 142-44.
7 Meredith G. Kline, By Oath Consigned: A Reinterpretation of
the Covenant Signs of Circumcision and Baptism (
B. Eerdmans Pub.
147
(cf. Jer 9:25; Ezek 44:6-9; see, also, Jer 4:4). This would be the
nation's condition while living in exile among uncircumcised nations who
were outside the covenant (cf. Ezek 44:7). Yahweh was, in effect,
declaring to the nation: "If you want to live like the uncovenanted
nations, then live among them!" Exile was a fitting and just punish-
ment. The confession of guilt (40a) must be sincere. There is no room
for pride. The humbling of the nation meant that they would no longer
be self-reliant, but rather, trusting Yahweh. fnk "humble" occurs
thirty-six times in the Old Testament (nineteen of which are in Chron-
icles). In the spiritual sense (rather than political or physical) it
is used only eighteen times (fourteen in Chronicles, three in Kings, and
Lev 26:41c).1 The employment of fnk in the spiritual sense is always in
a context of an invasion of the land by
were in all cases the chastisement of
try. The nations, therefore, would be the instrument of humiliation
for disobedient
The last phrase of verse 41 is the most difficult theologically.
The phrase Nvf hcr "make restitution for guilt" occurs only three times
in the Old Testament (here, v. 43, and Isa 40:2). Wenham interprets
the phrase in Leviticus 26:41 as meaning that
punishment for) the guilt."2 Keil and Delitzsch, regarding the same
reference, say that
deeds, i.e. in the consequences and results of them."3 In other words,
1 Cf. Elliger, Leviticus, p. 378 n. 72.
2 Wenham, Leviticus, p. 332 n. 12.
3 Keil and Delitzsch, Pentateuch, 2:478.
148
However, Delitzsch elsewhere (regarding Isa 40:2) distinguishes between
"a satisfactory reception" and "a satisfactory payment."2 He inter-
prets Isaiah 40:2 in the latter sense. Edward J. Young takes the
phrase in Isaiah 40:2 as a reference to the acceptance of "a sacrifice
sufficient to atone for the iniquity."3 He further indicates that such
a sacrifice is "more fully revealed in the fifty-third chapter of the
book."4 Young's view, therefore, is messianic in scope. He makes the
concept of the phrase one of absolute soteriology wherein the only
acceptable restitution for guilt must be made by God himself in the
person of Christ. It would be accurate to say that redemption or free-
dom from the guilt is not the work of
(cf. Isa 43:22-28).5 However, the phrase Nvf hcr is not a statement of
soteriological redemption. It is a statement of federal consequence.
Conversion or repentance must be manifested.6 Conversion must demon-
strate a turning away from sin. Conversion focuses "on concrete com-
mands, prescriptions, and rights, contempt for which had called down all
1 Keil and Delitzsch, Pentateuch, 2:478.
2 Franz Delitzsch, Biblical Commentary on the Prophecies of Isaiah,
3 vols., trans. James Martin, in Biblical Commentary on the Old Testament
(reprint ed.,
2:140.
3 Young, Isaiah, 3:23.
4 Ibid.; cf. Delitzsch, Isaiah, 2:129.
5 Zimmerli, Theology, p. 217.
6 Cf. the concept of works as the evidence of faith in the
epistle of James in the New Testament. The manifestation of conversion
ought not to be limited to the active participation in "good works."
It must also involve the passive acceptance of the righteous will of
God regarding the effects of past sin.
149
the disasters of the past, and the strict observance of which was
therefore essential in order to prove the seriousness of the new
change."1 The making of restitution for guilt, therefore, would be "an
evidence of the repentance and expiation,"2 not the cause. Such evi-
dence of true repentance also involves the acceptance of the conse-
quences of sin which are not removed immediately: "conversion and the
necessity of continuing to bear God's punishment are not mutually exclu-
sive."3 An example of such federal consequences may be seen in the case
of Rehoboam's servitude to Shishak (2 Chron 12:1-12). The leaders of
them a stay of full execution, but left the nation in subjection to
Shishak as a means of teaching the converted leaders the seriousness of
disobedience to Yahweh and the pleasantness of walking in obedience (vv.
6-8, 12). The impact of exile would linger on. No matter when this
repentance on the part of
exile and the land's sabbaths would have to be fulfilled. Also involved
in making restitution for their guilt would be the commencement of
obedience to the demands of the law of Yahweh (e.g., regular observance
of the sabbaths; cf. Neh 10:28-31 and Isa 58:1-14).
The protasis that is presented in 40a and 41cd consists of
three parts: (1) acknowledging before Yahweh the breach of covenant
(i.e., confession), (2) subjugating the mind and will (heart) to the God
1 Eichrodt, Theology, 2:470.
2 THAT, s.v. by G. Gerleman, 2:811, "Zeichen der Reue and
Busse" (emphasis added in translation).
3 Eichrodt, Theology, 2:471. Punishment, in this sense, is not
the mediate effect, but the immediate effect of the sin. Similarly, the
New Testament believer, though forgiven in Christ, yet must die physically.
His spiritual (second) death, however, is completely removed.
150
of the covenant (i.e., humility), and (3) obeying the life-changing
commands of the law-giver (i.e., restitution). Thereby the covenant
relationship may be reentered.
Remembrance: Yahweh's acceptance of repentance (v. 42)
The apodosis of the conditional sentence begun with 40a is in
a carefully constructed form:
bvqfy ytyrb-tx ytrkzv -42a
and I shall remember my covenant with Jacob,
qHcy ytyrb-tx Jxv -42b
even my covenant with Isaac,
rkzx Mhrbx ytyrb-tx Jxv -42c
yea, I shall remember my covenant with Abraham,
rkzx Crxhv -42d
and I shall remember the land.
The thrice-repeated verb rkz "remember" sets the tone of the apodosis.
The six occurrences of the first person singular (three times as the
subject of rkz and three times as a pronominal suffix on tyrb, "my cove-
nant")1 indicate that Yahweh himself will respond to the repentance of
context of the pericope and of the repentance of
In addition to the repetitions, the following observations may
be made concerning this apodosis: (1) The elevated style of 42abc
approaches that of a tristich containing synonymous parallelism.2
(2) rkz opens and closes the section in order to maintain the emphasis
1 See above, pp. 38-39.
2 This does not mean that the three men are synonymous. The
proper names are but modifiers of tyrb. The last phrase of 42 plus
the subsequent context confirms that only one covenant is being described.
If this is not poetic, it certainly is fastidiously developed so that
the logical correspondences (parallelism?) are undeniable.
151
on remembrance.1 (3) Jxv "yea, also/even"2 in 42bc continues the con-
cept initiated in 42a and is not employed again at the commencement of
42d. This confirms the individual nature of 42d. (4) The names of the
patriarchs in 42abc are the reverse of the usual order.3 The order
certainly does not indicate comparative worth in an ascending fashion.4
It probably presents a backward look to the original promise to Abraham.
The order would serve to confront
of the nation and its covenant relationship to Yahweh. (5) The apodosis
is concluded by 42d. It substitutes Crxh "the land" for tyrb "covenant"
since the central promise of the covenant was the land. It also uti-
lizes the juxtaposition of these two terms since they are the only truly
significant concepts. The patriarchs are not the center of attention.
The land, as given by Yahweh, is the focus of the verse. That land was
granted by the covenant made with Abraham. (6) Verse 42d also dupli-
cates the yqtl of rkz at the end of the line (cf. 42c) to maintain the continuity of
thought between 42abc and 42d. Therefore, 42d is a concise summary of 42abc.
1 Note the typical wqtl followed by yqtl. The absence of rkz in
42b aids the employment of the inclusion. Rashi indulges in fanciful
speculation to explain the absence of rkz in 42b. He explains it on
the basis of the presence of the ashes of Isaac on an altar before God.
2 See above, pp. 90-91, 142.
3 This is a hapax phainomenon in the Old Testament. The triad
(Abraham, Isaac, Jacob) occurs as follows: tyrb rkz, Exod 2:24, Lev
26:42; rkz, Exod 32:13 (lxrWy "
2 Kgs 13:23, 1 Chr 16:15-18=Ps 105:8-11; Crx fbw "the land sworn (to),"
Gen 50:24, Exod 6:8, 32:13, 33:1, Deut 1:8, 6:10, 34:4; hmdx fbw (same
as Crx fbw), Num 32:11, Deut 30:20; rbd fbw) "the word sworn (to)," Deut
9:5; Myhlxl/Mfl hyh fbw) "sworn to be a people/a god," Deut 29:12; hxr
"(God of . . .) appeared," Exod 3:16, 4:5, 6:3; yhlx "God of," Exod 3:6,
15, 16, 4:5, 1 Kgs 18:36, 1 Chr 29:18, 2 Chr 30:6 (lx bvw "return unto"
precedes).
4 Cf. Rashi; Freedman and Simon, Midrash Rabba, p. 462 (fanciful
explanations for many aspects of verse 42).
152
Repetition: a summary concerning retribution (v. 43)
Retribution is not primarily reformatory, curative, or prevent-
ative in nature. Retribution is primarily revelatory. The just pun-
ishment of the sinner (the covenant breaker) is a clear manifestation
of the holiness and righteousness of Yahweh. Verse 43 emphasizes the
reason for the retribution involving the land and people of
Nevertheless,1 the land must be forsaken (bzf)2 by them (Mhm),3
so that it might enjoy the restitution of (hcr)4 its sabbaths (tbw)5
during its desolation (Mmw)6 without them (Mhm).7 However,8 they
themselves (Mhv) must make restitution (hcr)9 for their guilt (Nvf)10
simply because (Nfybv Nfy)11 they rejected (sxm)12 my ordinances
(Fpwm)13 and their soul despised (wpn hlfg)14 my statutes (hqH),15
1 The adversative waw is employed here with the emphasized sub-
ject, using the preceding Crxhv (42d) as a springboard. Cf. BDB, p.
252 (l.e); GKC, p. 455 (§142a).
2 The yqtl is interpreted here as a jussive. Cf. Jouon, Grammaire,
pp. 310-11 (§114j).
3 Ibid., p. 401 (§132d) .
4 See above, pp. 130-32. The jussive of the first verb is con-
tinued here by the form as well as its context. Cf. Jouon, Grammaire,
p. 316 (§1l6e); Davidson, Syntax, p. 93 (§65 R.6); Driver, Treatise on
the Use of the Tenses, p. 66 (§62). For "so that," see BDB, p. 254 (3).
5 See above, pp. 47-49, 129-34.
6 See above, pp. 32, 131. The irregular syncope of the form may
be due to an attraction to the preceding word for vocalic assonance:
hm.Awah;BA || hAyt,(to)B;wa (unaccented holem is very minimal in pronunciation) rather
than hm.Aw.ahAB;. Cf. GKC, p. 182 (§67y).
7 Cf. GKC, p. 382 (-§119w). 8 Adversative waw; emphatic pronoun.
9 See above, pp. 147-49. 10 See above, pp. 142-44, 147-49.
11 Cf. Jouon, Grammaire, p. 523 (§170f n. 1); Davidson, Syntax,
p. 198 (§147 R.2). This phrase occurs only here, Ezek 13:10, and 36:3.
One Nfy) occurs in Ezek 20:16, 24, with a similar context.
12 See above, pp. 52, 86-87. 13 See above, p. 88.
14 See above, pp. 52-53, 72-73, 88, 120, 124.
15 See above, 51-53.
153
The structure of verse 43 (together with the preceding line, 42d) may
be represented in the following fashion:1
(1st com. sing.) rkzx Crxhv -42d
I shall and
remember the
land
_____________________________________________________________
(3rd fem. sing.) Mhm bzft Crxhv -43a
by shall be and
them forsaken the
land
Mhm hmwhb hyttbw-tx Crtv -43b
without its sabbaths and
them during its it
desolation shall
enjoy
______________________________________________________________
(3rd masc. pl.) Mnvf-tx vcry Mhv -43c
for shall and
their make they
guilt resti-
tution
vsxm yFpwmb Nfybv vfy -43d
they rejected simply
my ordinances because
Mwpn hlfg ytqH-txv -43e
their despised and
soul my statutes
The following observations may be made concerning this structure: (1) The
repetition of the assonance involving cr in the first member of the first
four lines emphasizes the main concern of retribution and restoration,
the land. (2) The repetition of guttural+z (zx and zf) serves to heighten
the correspondence between the opposites rkz "remember" and bzf "forsake."
1 Some of the correspondences are conceptual, but most involve
assonance which can be observed only in the Hebrew. The English transla-
tion cannot convey all the nuances (especially in the interlinear format).
154
What Yahweh will remember,
masculine plurals of Mhv Mhm . . . Mhm "by them . . . without them, and
they" bind the first three lines of verse 43 together. As 42d and 43a
began the same (Crxhv), so 43a and 43b end the same (Mhm). Then 43c
picks up the last concept of 43b to maintain the continuity. The logi-
cal progression is noteworthy: forsaken by them --> enjoyed restitu-
tion without them --> nevertheless, they must make restitution. (4) In
43b and 43c the commencing verb is hcr. The cr continues the assonance
of 42d and 43a. The concept of restitution is a key element in 43bc.
(5) The repetition of nf in the last term of 43c and the first two terms
of 43d binds those lines together by assonance. The concepts presented
by the three forms are also related: there is guilt, as is proven by
the cause or reason for restitution. In other words, restitution would
have to be made because of guilt which existed because of disobedience.
(6) sxm Fpwm "reject ordinance(s)" and lfg hqH "despise statute(s)" are
the reverse of verse 15 (sxm hqH "reject statute(s)" and lfg Fpwm "despise
ordinance(s)"), it is significant that both verbs in 43de are qtl even
though they are preceded by their objects. As mentioned previously, this
is the only such example occurring in Leviticus regarding hqH and its
verbs.1 The same observation holds for Fpwm and its verbs: when it pre-
cedes the verb, the verb is yqtl; and when it follows the verb, the
verb is qtl (Lev 18:4, 5, 26; 19:37; 30:22; 25:18; 26:15). The only
exception is verse 43. The departure from the usual syntax of the peri-
cope must be for the purpose of bringing the concepts forcefully to the
mind of the reader. Disobedience is the true and emphatic cause for
the need of restitution. There is no question regarding
1 See above, pp. 52-53.
155
There is no doubt that restitution is necessary. (7) The first person
singular is the subject of the verb in 42d. Every line of verse 43 has
some mention of the third person plural (referring to
the third feminine singular (referring to the land) is the subject in
43ab, while the third masculine plural (referring to the people of
Therefore, verse 43 presents emphases concerning the land,
responsibility/guilt, restitution, disobedience, and
truly a negative picture in contrast to that presented by verse 42.1
The jussives (43abc), however, provide an element of anticipation and
decree. Operation Restitution would be initiated by Yahweh on the
basis of his covenant with Abraham. The Mosaic Covenant would have a
role in the process by means of the sabbatical stipulations. The Abra-
hamic Covenant promised a land and a seed to inherit that land. The
Mosaic Covenant promised a nation with a special relationship to Yahweh
(Exod 19:5-6). As circumcision was instituted as the seal of the Abra-
hamic Covenant (Gen 17:9-14), so the sabbaths appear to have been the
seal of the Mosaic Covenant (cf. Exod 20:8-11; Leviticus 25; 26:2;
Neh 10:28-31; Isa 58:1-14). The emphasis on land in Leviticus 26
belongs to the sphere of the Abrahamic Covenant, while the emphasis on
sabbatical restitution belongs to the sphere of the Mosaic Covenant.2
1 See above, pp. 150-51.
2 Onqelos evidently interpreted the retribution of v. 43 in the
light of the blessings and cursings of the Palestinian Covenant, since
he substituted the following phrase for Nfybv Nfy "simply because":
lydb Nvhylf ytyx Nkrb JlH NyFvl "there are cursings instead of blessings
distinguished against them."
156
Reaffirmation: Yahweh's promise to the exiles (vv. 44-45)
In contrast to
not breach his covenant promise. That contrasting behavior is emphasized
by the triple particle construction introducing verse 44:
Yet inspite of this (txz-Mg-Jxv),1 I shall not reject (sxm)2 them
while they are in the land of their enemies, nor despise (lfg)3 them
so as to exterminate (hlk),4 thereby breaching (rrp)5 my covenant
(tyrb)6 with them, because I am Yahweh their god (hvhy ynx yk
Mhyhlx).7
All of the concepts contained in verse 44 have been employed before in
Leviticus 26 except hlk "exterminate."8 On the basis of this usage of
hlk together with its employment by Jeremiah and Ezekiel, Raitt makes
the following statement:
The failure of chastisement to bring the expected repentance is a
theme which runs through Hosea (6:lff; 7:11-14; 11:5), Jeremiah (5:3;
7:28; 13:22-23; 15:7), and Ezekiel (16:27-29; 23:8-11). Their devel-
opment of this theme moves their threat of punishment beyond the
framework of chastisement to a level not merely ignored but specifi-
cally denied by Leviticus 26. Both Jeremiah (9:16; 14:12) and Eze-
bring to an end, annihilate," to express the eventual unqualified
character of judgment, while Lev. 26:44 uses the same verbal root to
deny that God will "destroy them utterly." And, as we will see below,
Lev. 26:44 denies the rejection which Jeremiah and Ezekiel teach.
From this evidence we conclude that Leviticus 26 intentionally repudi-
ates or corrects a prophetic teaching on the intensity and purpose of
God's punitive activity.9
1 See above, pp. 39-40.
2 Note the emphatic negative construction (xl + qtl) and the repe-
tition of the verb used of
Use of the Tenses, p. 18 (§13).
3 See above, n. 2. Note, also, the absence of wpn "soul" with lfg.
4 Cf. Deut 28:21. 5 See above, pp. 88-89. Cf. Judg 2:1-2.
6 See above, pp. 66-69, 155. 7 See above, pp. 47, 50, 79.
8 hlk is the root employed in v. 16 to describe the effects of
the debilitating disease or fever on the eyes.
9 Raitt, Theology of Exile, pp. 25-26 (emphasis added).
157
However, when all the passages dealing with
mination (hlk) are reviewed, an interesting pattern emerges:
hlk in/from off the land: Jeremiah 5:3; 10:25; 14:12; 16:4;
Ezekiel 5:12; 13:14; 22:31; 43:8; Hosea 11:6
hlk among the nations/outside the land: Jeremiah 9:15 (
44:27 (only a small exile group in
(both of these verses refer to the postexodus wilderness and
are worded as divine intention followed by but . . . , vv. 14,
22); Isaiah 1:28
hlk xl "not exterminate" among the nations/outside the land: Levi-
ticus 26:44
hlk xl (absolute): Malachi 3:6
There are only three exceptions to the pattern of annihilation in the
land/preservation among the nations: Jeremiah 9:15 and Isaiah 1:28.
The latter passage refers only to the ultimate annihilation (from off
planet earth) of those who are "forsakers of Yahweh" (hvhy ybzf). The
former passage is apparently unique in all the canonical prophets of
the Old Testament! It may be that, like Isaiah 1:28, Jeremiah 9:15
should be understood as an eschatological reference which also involves
only the disobedient of that day.1 In any case, Raitt's grounds for
setting Leviticus 26 at odds with Jeremiah and Ezekiel have been anni-
hilated. The reader of scripture must be certain to observe the dis-
tinctions made within each passage and its context. The vast majority
of apparent contradictions are solved in that fashion. Raitt later
makes the concession (concerning the similar treatment of sxm "reject")
that rejection is limited by Jeremiah and Ezekiel to a specific genera-
tion and a specific (short) period of time without any reference to the
1 Jer 9:10 describes what appears to be a yet unfulfilled degree
of desolation for the city of
same desolate conditions. Verse 12 gives the reason for the judgment:
"because of their forsaking (bzf, cf. Isa 1:28) my law." The universal-
ity and futurity of this judgment are stated in vv. 24-25.
158
people as an entire ethnic/national entity.1 Perhaps the same conces-
sion ought to be made for the concept of "annihilation/extermination"
in order to accurately represent the prophets and Leviticus 26. There
is no contradiction in scripture. God would exterminate (hlk) from
their own land as chastisement for disobedience, but he would never
exterminate (hlk) them in their exiled condition. In other words, God
would always preserve a remnant in exile to return to the land in true
repentance.
The Selbstvorstellungsformel2 concludes verse 44. This is the
manner in which the preceptual section of this pericope concluded (vv.
1-2) and the manner in which the promise section also concluded (v. 13).
Its employment in the conclusion of the penalty section, too, demon-
strates the unity of the pericope. The pericope is united in context,
contents, and covenant concepts. As the pericope commenced, so it is
closed, with the identification of the covenant suzerain, Yahweh.
Verse 45 explains succinctly why Yahweh will never reject nor
despise
(rkz),3 for their benefit (Mhl),4 the covenant with the ancestors (tyrb
Mynwxr)5 whom I brought out from the
of the nations to be their god (Myhlxl Mhl tyhl).6 I am Yahweh (ynx
1 Raitt, Theology of Exile, pp. 65, 74, 79-80.
2 See above, p. 47.
3 See above, pp. 150-51.
4 Dativus commodi, GKC, p. 381 (§ll9s).
5 Cf. Deut 19:14; Driver, Deuteronomy, p. 235.
6 See above, pp. 73-79.
159
hvhy).1" Any doubt concerning the meaning of Mynwxr "ancestors" is
quickly dispelled by the following relative clause, "whom I brought out
from the
Mosaic Covenant (cf. the Abrahamic Covenant in v. 42). It is the cove-
nant which God made with the nation which he had brought out of
That covenant had been established within a few months of the giving of
the revelation recorded in Leviticus 26. The Mosaic Covenant is the
primary covenant in this pericope.2 The opening statements (vv. 1-2)
were drawn from the stipulations of that covenant. The closing state-
ments of the pericope draw from the history of that covenant.
As
nation would be publicly desolated for disloyalty to the covenant. It
is significant that there is no repetition here of Mfl yl tyhl "to be
my people." The identification described in this verse is one-way,
"to be their god." The blessing/promise of verses 4-12 involved a
mutual relationship. The cursing/punishment of verses 14-45 is to be
unilaterally administered by the only remaining loyal covenant partner,
Yahweh. The second Selbstvorstellungsformel in this section corresponds
to the second one in the first section of the pericope (as, also, the
first ones correspond; cf. vv. 1-2, 44). The covenant would be enforced
because the covenant enforcer never abandons his covenant. Yahweh had
delivered
Yahweh did not bring the nation to Sinai only to forsake them on the
threshhold of their wilderness experience. In fact, it appears that the
1 See above, pp. 47, 50.
2 See above, pp. 7-11, 79-80, 82-84. The proximity of vv. 42
and 45 underscore the interrelationship of the two covenants (Abrahamic
and Mosaic) in this context.
160
heilsgeschichtliche Formulierung1 is expanded here by giving the manner
and purpose of the exodus, in order that the manner and purpose of the
exile might be identified with it. The overall concept of verses 44-45
is represented well by Yahweh's declaration in Malachi:
ytynw xl hvhy ynx yk
Since I, Yahweh, do not change,
Mtylk xl bqyy-ynb Mtxv
therefore, you, O sons of Jacob,
shall not be exterminated. (Mal 3:6)
The Summary of Verses 14-45
Form
The structural outline of verses 14-45 is as follows:
(1. Precept, vv. 1-2)
(2. Promise, vv. 3-13)
3. Penalty (vv. 14-45)
3.1 - The Cause: Disobedience (vv. 14-15)
3.2 - The Consequence: Retribution (vv. 16-38)
3.21 - Debilitation and defeat (vv. 16-17)
3.22 - Drought (vv. 18-20)
3.23 - Devastation by wild beasts (vv. 21-22)
3.24 - Deprivation by siege (vv. 23-26)
3.25 - Deportation (vv. 27-38)
3.251 - Introduction (vv. 27-28)
3.252 - Dehumanization (v. 29)
3.253 - Desolation (vv. 30-32)
3.254 - Dispe rsion (v. 33)
3.255 - Desertion of the land (vv. 34-38)
3.2551 - The sabbath rest (vv. 34-35)
3.2552 - The stricken remnant (vv. 36-38)
3.3 - The Contingency: Repentance (vv. 39-45)
3.31 - Repentance:
(vv. 39-41)
3.32 - Remembrance: Yahweh's acceptance of repentance
(v. 42)
1 See above, pp. 79-81.
161
3.33 - Repetition: a summary concerning retribution
(v. 43)
3.34 - Reaffirmation: Yahweh's promise to the exiles
(vv. 44-45)
Another revealing analysis of verses 14-45 involves the syntac-
tical relationships, as follows:
Protasis (vv. 14-15)
Apodosis (vv. 16-17)
Protasis (v. l8a)
Apodosis (vv. 18b-20) REFRAIN (v. 18b)1
Protasis (v. 21a)
Apodosis (vv. 21b-22) REFRAIN (v. 21b)
Protasis (v. 23).
Apodosis (vv. 24-26) REFRAIN (v. 24b)
Protasis (v. 27)
Apodosis (vv. 28-38) REFRAIN (v. 28b)
Declaration (v. 39
Protasis (v. 40a) Parenthesis (vv. 40b-41b)
Protasis (v. 41cd)
Apodosis (v. 42)
Jussives (v. 43abc)
Indicatives (v. 43de)
Promises (v. 44ab) Selbstvorstellungsformel (v. 44c)
Promise (v. 45a) Heilsgeschichtsformel (v. 45bc)
1 MkytxFH-lf fbw "seven times for your sins."
162
The elevated literary style, observed in verses 1-13,1 is con-
tinued in verses 14-45. From time to time, the writer of the pericope
employed various literary devices for emphasis: the refrain (vv. 18b,
21b, 24b, 28b), the casus pendens (vv. 26, 36, 39), conflation (vv. 27-
28), chiasmus (vv. 17, 29, 34-35), assonance (vv. 33, 36-37, 43), the
taunt-song (vv. 36-37a), logical/conceptual/grammatical correspondence
(vv. 30-32), and the characteristic alternation of qtl and yqtl (vv.
29, 33, 34, 35, 40b-41a, 42). Also, the self-introduction and salvation-
history formulas (Selbstvorstellungsformel and Heilsgeschichtsformel)
are employed in the closing of verses 14-45 in the same manner as they
were employed in the closing of verses 1-2 and 3-13. This binds the
pericope together in a form of inclusion. The literary beauty of the
pericope cannot be denied. It is a literary masterpiece lacking in
superfluous phraseology. Every word, every construction, every corres-
pondence, has been carefully chosen for clarity and effect.
Aim
The time which
of covenant reception. It was also a time of covenant application. A
series of events produced visible covenant retribution. The golden calf
incident provoked the public display of shattering the covenant tablets
(Exod 32:19). About three thousand died that day (v. 28). Two priests,
sons of Aaron, also died at Sinai when they did not follow the instruc-
tions concerning the service at the altar (Lev 10:1-2). Later, a man
was executed by stoning because of his blasphemous appropriation of the
name of the covenant deity (Lev 24:10-23).2 These evidences of disobe-
1 See above, pp. 81-82. 2 See above, pp. 9-10.
163
dience at the very initiation of the Mosaic Covenant demonstrated that
the covenant could be breached. These occasions also demonstrated how
seriously Yahweh viewed breach of covenant. Covenant transgression/
disloyalty was worthy of the death penalty. These incidents confirmed
the necessity of emphasis on the prohibition of idolatry (cf. Lev 26:1).
All three incidents are in the context of the sabbatical principle:
(1) Golden calf apostasy: Cf. Exodus 31:13-18. The last instruc-
tion Moses received from Yahweh, before descending the moun-
tain to find the idolatry in progress, concerned the Sabbath.
(2) Strange fire incident: Cf. Exodus 40:1, 17; Leviticus 8:33;
9:1. The consecration of the Aaronic priesthood commenced on
a sabbath and finished on a sabbath. Nadab and Abihu may have
offered their fire on the eighth day of consecration, even
though they had just spent a seven-day period of consecration
between two sabbaths.
(3) The case of blasphemy: Cf. Leviticus 23:1-44; 24:8; 25:1-55.
The contextual setting of the record concerning the case of
blasphemy is saturated with the instruction concerning
sabbaths.
The sabbatical principle kept before
absolute sovereignty over his covenanted people. In those first months
at Sinai, the nation had already learned that idolatry and the neglect
of the sabbatical principle struck at the heart of their covenant rela-
tionship to Yahweh. They had experienced firsthand the anger of Yahweh
as he wrought covenant vengeance. With this historical context in mind,
it is not surprising to find Leviticus 26 dealing with the concepts of
curse, penalty, punishment, chastisement, retribution, and restitution.
Judgment, however, leaves behind it the taste of death. It was
a bitter experience that
in itself, there would be no parenetic value in its instruction or
application. However, the judgment described in Leviticus 26:14-45
would be administered with several ends in mind: (1) Chief of all the
164
ends of chastisement would be the acknowledging of who the covenant
deity is: Yahweh. (2) The land would enjoy its just retribution,
resting for the sabbaths denied it by the disobedient nation. (3) The
nation would repent, making confession of guilt, being humbled in
spirit, and making restitution. (4) Yahweh would accept his people.
This acceptance is not an emasculation of punishment.1 The acceptance
reflects the relation of punishment to more than the physical exis-
tence and its enjoyment. The five stages of divine retribution in
verses 14-38 confronted the disobedient Israelite with the disruption
of all areas of existence: mental, physical, emotional, and spiritual.
If
in any of those four realms of life.
God will utilize
justice. This is evidence of a universalism in his control of history.
God is lord/suzerain of all, even of those who refuse to recognize his
lordship. The land given to Abraham's seed has a significant role in
the Yahweh-directed history of planet earth. That land was to have its
sabbaths. The sabbaths were to be evidence of
the significance of the land of the covenant. If the covenant people,
of the land, who among the nations will? Yahweh is a god of time (sab-
bath) and space (land).
before the eyes of the nations who observed Yahweh's deeds at the exodus
from
In the exodus from
with Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob (cf. Exod 2:24; 6:5). In the future
1 Contra Raitt, Theology of Exile, p. 26.
165
exodus from exile (specifically the Babylonian exile), Yahweh would
again "remember" his covenant with the patriarchs (Lev 26:42). "God's
remembering of his covenant is not an abstract phenomenon. Remembering
his covenant means the raising of a Moses, the besting of Pharaoh, and
the liberation of
of the covenant would mean the raising of a Cyrus (cf. Isa 45:1-7), the
humiliation of a Nebuchadnezzar (cf. Dan 4:1-37), the calling of a
Nehemiah (cf. Neh 1:1-2:20), and the liberation of
(cf. Ezra 1:1-5). Any yet future return from worldwide dispersion (cf.
Deut 28:64; 30:1-20) will doubtless proceed along similar lines.
It would not be the Abrahamic Covenant alone which Yahweh remem-
bers, however. The Abrahamic Covenant involves the land (Lev 26:42).
Yahweh would also remember his covenant with the "ancestors" who were
delivered from
The covenant was confirmed with many, not just Moses. Both the Mosaic
and Abrahamic covenants were confirmed with many, although they were
mediated through one key individual. The involvement of the many con-
cerned their identification with Yahweh (v. 45).
The exile rendered all the aspects of the Abrahamic Covenant
inoperable.2 Likewise, all the aspects of the Mosaic Covenant would be
inoperable in exile:
(1) a special people above all the nations (Exod 19:5; Deut 26:18-
19) would become abhorred by Yahweh and the tail of all the
nations (Lev 26:30; Deut 28:43-44);
(2) the kingdom of priests (Exod 19:6) would become sacrificially
unacceptable to Yahweh (Lev 26:31);
1 Klein,
2 See above, pp. 140-41.
166
(3) the holy nation (Exod 19:6) would become burdened with guilt
(Lev 26:39) and characterized by a heathenlike uncircumcised
heart (v. 41); and,
(4) the history of deliverance (Exod 19:4) would become a history
of exile (Lev 26:33, 38).
Simply stated, verses 14-45 provided
concerning the perpetuity of both the Abrahamic and Sinaitic (Mosaic)
covenants. This instruction was not so much the clarification of
their joint authority (cf. vv. 1-13), as the clarification of how the
covenants could be "remembered," that is, reactivated. Each covenant
contained its own emphasis. The Abrahamic identified a people ("seed")
and a land. Circumcision identified the people with the covenant deity.
The Mosaic identified a people ("nation") and employed the sabbath as
the means of identifying the people with the covenant deity and the
covenanted land. Each generation of Israelites would be faced with
covenant accountability. They would have to make restitution for their
own confessed guilt. If one generation did not see the perfect fulfill-
ment of the covenants, perhaps the next generation would. The genera-
tions may come and go, but the covenants of Yahweh would remain. They
would operate by blessing or by cursing. The cursing would render all
aspects of the blessing inoperable in exile. Yahweh would always stand
ready to fulfill the perfection of his promise. He would always plead
for repentance. He would always be loyal to his covenants.
Postscript (v. 46)
Verse 46 establishes the historical and geographical setting
for the entire pericope. "These are the statutes (qH) and the ordinances
(Fpwm) and the laws (hrvt)1 which Yahweh appointed (Ntn) between him and
1 See above, p. 41.
167
the sons of
aspects of this verse which require presentation:
(1) "These" obviously refers to at least the contents of chapter
26 since both qH (hqH) and Fpwm are employed in the chapter (vv. 3, 15,
43). The primary reference would have to be to the prohibition concern-
ing idolatry and the command to observe the sabbaths and preserve the
sanctuary (vv. 1-2). The constant reference to the sabbaths in the
pericope also ties it with the ordinances of chapter 25 (cf. 25:18).
Therefore, the reference is to the legislation associated with the
Mosaic Covenant.
(2) "Which Yahweh appointed" declares the divine origin of these
commandments. The legislation was not from Moses, it was from the god
of the covenant himself. The rain-giver, the peace-giver, the presence-
giver, the drought-giver, the death-dealer, is also the law-giver. This
is the reason for the continuous repetition of "my covenant." Essenti-
ally, these are unilateral suzerainty treaties. Yahweh has "appointed."
Most theologians readily admit to the unilateral nature of the Abrahamic
Covenant since it is obvious that Abraham slept through the covenant
ceremony (Gen 15:12-21). However, most overlook the simple fact that at
Sinai Yahweh did not engage
spoke of the covenant as already made: "And now, if you will actually
obey1 my voice and keep MY COVENANT,2 then you shall be . . . " (Exod
19:5a): Yahweh came to
1 This translation reflects the employment of a prepositive,
intensive, cognate infinitive absolute.
2 The uppercase letters employed in the translation indicate the
emphasis which the translator (and, writer of this dissertation) wishes
the reader to observe.
168
stipulations of a covenant already appointed. The divine, unilateral,
origin of the covenant is the basis for the authority and perpetuity of
the Mosaic Covenant alongside the Abrahamic.1
(3) "Between himself and the sons of
recipients of the Sinaitic legislation. It is not appointed for any
other people. Indeed, it is not merely the appointing of
is the instrument by which that nation may be made a special people of
God apart from all the peoples of the earth (Exod 19:5-6). Since the
covenant was appointed for only
to observe its stipulations. The Old Testament covenants were exclu-
live: oi!tine<j ei]sin ]Israhlei?tai, w$n h[ ui[oqesi<a kai> h[ do<ca kai> ai[
diaqh?kai kai> h[ nomoqesi<a kai> h[ latrei<a kai> ai[ e]paggeli<ai "who are
Israelites, belonging to whom are the son-adoption and the glory and
the covenants and the law-giving and the service and the promises"
(Rom 9:4).2 No other people or nation would suffer the retributive
measures or the beneficial gifts of Leviticus 26 since it all involves
the covenants.3 if this pericope involves a prophetic preview of the
Palestinian Covenant, it must bear the same limitations.
(4) "On
was revealed. This is not a statement of exilic or postexilic revela-
tion. The time was sometime during the residence at
1 See above, pp. 82-84, 162-66.
2 In this passage, son-adoption undoubtedly refers to statements
like that in 2 Sam 7:14, Isa 43:6, or Hos 1:10. Glory =sekinah glory
(cf. Ezek 1-10). Covenants (plural) = Abrahamic, Mosaic, Palestinian,
Davidic, and New. Law-giving (lit. "law-appointment"!) = the concept of
Lev 26:46: Service = tabernacle/temple ministry. Promises = Acts 2:39,
7:17, 13:23, 32, 26:6, Rom 4:13, 15:8, Eph 2:12, and Jas 2:5.
3 Rain, prosperity, drought, and siege may happen to Gentiles,
but are not the direct consequence of a covenant relationship.
169
is subsequent to the initial appearance of Yahweh to Moses and the
nation (Exodus 19) and prior to the commencement of the years of wilder-
ness wanderings. Even if the date of the writing was to be placed later,
the date of the revelation remains Mosaic. For
of Yahweh, transmit the will of Yahweh, and perform the will of Yahweh,
the revelation is required even if a writing is not required (cf. 2 Pet
1:21, lale<w "spoke," not "wrote"). The content and context of the
pericope are irrefutably Sinaitic/Mosaic. The pericope's parenesis
would affect the religion of
(5) "Through Moses" indicates that Moses was personally present
and was the direct recipient of this revelation. Since he received it,
there is no viable reason to believe that he could not have inscrip-
turated it as well.
Thus, at
with further instructions concerning their covenant relationship to him
(and, he to them). Leviticus 26 is part of that revelation, part of that
which "Yahweh spoke unto Moses on
and thirty years (at least) since the granting of the Abrahamic Covenant.
It was thirty-eight years before the giving of the Palestinian Covenant
on the plains of
the giving of the Mosaic Covenant--perhaps a few months subsequent.
The Mosaic was the most immediate covenant. Therefore, its presence in
the pericope is not surprising. The Abrahamic is involved in the peri-
cope because of the need to clarify its relationship to the recently-
given Mosaic Covenant. If there are references to the Palestinian Cove-
nant in Leviticus 26, they would have to be considered as anticipatory
or prophetic. The Palestinian Covenant was not yet history. The mise
170
en scene thus circumscribed, the recipients of the revelation contained
in Leviticus 26 would have in mind the Sinaitic/Mosaic Covenant and the
Abrahamic Covenant. The covenant which had been in their hearts and on
their minds from
pleasures of
Exod 3:13-17; 4:5; 6:3-8; 13:5). Questions were undoubtedly raised
by the new covenant at Sinai. Therefore, this pericope was granted to
answer those questions.
The only revelation
between the Abrahamic and Mosaic covenants at the time of the commence-
ment of the wilderness wanderings was Leviticus 26. The only revelation
concerning the potential of exile from the land yet unpossessed was Levi-
ticus 26. The only revelation concerning the irrevocable sabbath rest
of the land was contained in Leviticus 26. The only revelation concern-
ing the potential role of their enemies in retribution while in the
promised land was Leviticus 26. Leviticus 5, 16, and 26 comprised the
total body of revelation concerning confession of guilt. Leviticus 26
was to be taken by
their promised landedness. They knew what God required of them when
they reached the land. They fell short while yet landless because of
unbelief (cf. Ps 95:8-11; Heb 3:7-4:11). Leviticus 26 reminded them
that repentance could restore the disobedient (Lev 26:39-45), even while
they were outside the land.
CHAPTER IV
A COMPARATIVE ANALYSIS OF LEVITICUS 26,
ESARHADDON'S TREATIES, AND THE SEFIRE
INSCRIPTIONS
The significance of Esarhaddon's vassal treaties and the Sefire
inscriptions to the biblical texts of Leviticus 26 and Deuteronomy 27-28
has been recognized by many scholars.1 Such significance relates both
to form2 and content. The biblical materials cannot be properly evalu-
ated or understood to the fullest extent without taking into account
the extrabiblical evidence.3 The evaluation of the impact of ancient
near eastern treaties on the biblical text of Leviticus 26 must be based
upon a clear understanding of the historical relationships so that the
direction of influence might be identified.
Dating the Documents
Leviticus 26 has been dated already to the Mosaic period (i.e.,
the fifteenth century B.C.).4 The vassal treaties of Esarhaddon are
specifically dated in their colophon: "the 16th day of the month Iyyar,
Eponym (limmu) Nabu-bel-usur, saknu-official of Dur-sarrukin (Khorsabad)"
1 See above, pp. 17-18.
2 McCarthy, Treaty and Covenant, passim.
3 Ibid. , pp. 3-4..
4 See above, pp. 20-21, 168-169.
171
172
=May, 672 B.C.1 The Sefire inscriptions present a less clear dating
than the Esarhaddon treaties. The three stelas may not have been writ-
ten at the same time, even though they appear to present the same basic
treaty between the north Syrian king of Arpad, Mati’el, and the king of
KTK, Bir-Ga’yah.2 However, there is a definite terminus ante quem of
740 B.C. (the date of Tiglathpileser III's conquest of Arpad).3 For
the terminus a quo, 760 B.C. is the earliest date offered by the commen-
tators.4 Therefore, the dates of the extrabiblical materials are from
650 to 700 years later than Leviticus 26.
The dates for the extrabiblical treaties should not be construed
as evidence for a late date for the composition of the biblical materials.
"In all periods of
which treaty-curses may easily have entered the stream of Israelite lit-
erature."5 The best approach to these treaties and Leviticus 26 is to
view them as being mutually influenced by the common formulas and termi-
nology of treaties/covenants "current throughout the ancient Near East,
and that the kings of whose treaties we have knowledge and the biblical
writers both drew upon these in their different ways and for their dif-
ferent purposes"6 in their different times.
1 Wiseman, Vassal-Treaties of Esarhaddon, p. 3.
porary on the throne would have been Manasseh. Cf. John C. Whitcomb, Jr.,
Solomon to the Exile Studies in Kings and Chronicles (
Baker Book House, 1971), pp. 88, 145 (chronological charts).
2 John C. L. Gibson, Textbook of Syrian Semitic Inscriptions, 2
vols. (Oxford: Clarendon Press, 1971, 1975), 2:19-23.
3 Fitzmyer, Aramaic Inscriptions of Sefire, p. 2. Contemporaries
would have been
4 Gibson, Textbook, 2:19.
5 Hillers, Treaty-Curses, p. 85.
6 Gibson, Textbook, 2:23 (emphasis added).
173
The feature of Leviticus 26 which causes some commentators to
date its composition in either the exilic period or the postexilic
period is that of exile (vv. 33-44).1 However, McCarthy makes the
observation that, even in the extrabiblical documents, exile references
are no evidence for a later addition or composition:
This is the question of vaticinium ex eventu. In the extreme
application of the idea descriptions of war: invasion, pillage,
and especially exile ([Deut] 28, 30-34, 37b, 48-57, 64-68) are sup-
posed to be additions to the text resulting from the experience of
a particular event, usually the siege of 587 B.C. and its after-
math. Now, the topic as such is a commonplace. It occurs in Esar-
haddon's treaties, at Sefire, in Ashurbanipal's annals etc. where
it is not vaticinium ex eventu nor indeed necessarily a reference
to a particular event. The annals point to the reality: a knowl-
edge of what happened in ancient warfare, a knowledge amply avail-
able to Dt (cf. 2 Kgs 6,24-29, and, presumably, the Assyrian siege
of
common in ancient literature. Hence a simple reference to war and
exile is no sign that a passage is a post factum addition.2
Even though the Hittite treaties are more consonant historically
with the Mosaic period,3 and the Assyrian treaties more consonant with
the exilic period, the attempts to associate the Sinaitic/Mosaic Cove-
nant with the former and the Palestinian Covenant with the latter are
lacking in evidence to seal the matter.4 The historical emphasis of the
Hittite treaties with their legal aspects and the imprecatory emphasis
of the Assyrian treaties with their vassalship aspects are not mutually
exclusive.5 Both elements and emphases are contained in both the Mosaic
and Palestinian covenants as well. Weinfeld's description of the Pales-
1 Cf. Peter R. Ackroyd,
(Oxford: Oxford University Press, 1970), p. 149.
2 McCarthy, Treaty and Covenant, p. 180.
3 Cf. ibid., p. 25.
4 Cf. Weinfeld, Deuteronomy and the Deuteronomic School, p. 156.
5 Ibid., pp. 146-57. Cf. McCarthy, Treaty and Covenant, pp.
136-40, 149-53.
174
tinian (Shechem/Plains of
to God, which was so strongly at stake as a result of Canaanite-
ite amalgamation"1 should be restated. The Palestinian Covenant was a
reaffirmation of loyalty to Yahweh since that loyalty had been so sadly
lacking throughout the wilderness wanderings.2 After all, the covenant
on the plains of
That covenant preceded the Israelite entrance into
consideration of the reaffirmation of loyalty to Yahweh in Leviticus 26
must take into consideration the Sinaitic apostasies.3 The Sitz im
Leben for the Palestinian Covenant (and, also, for Leviticus 26) differs
from that for the Mosaic Covenant. However, the history of apostasy in
the wilderness (and at Sinai) provides sufficient basis for the differ-
ence without necessitating the exilic situation.
Dependence in the Documents
Assuming the data concerning the dating of the extrabiblical and
biblical materials, the concept of direct dependence is untenable. Levi-
ticus 26 did not employ the treaties of Esarhaddon and/or Sefire.
fifteenth-century document cannot be dependent upon eighth- to seventh-
century documents: This does not rule out the possibility of mutual
dependence upon a stream of treaty formulas conveying the same basic
terms and concepts from the third millennium through the first millennium
B.C. In fact, the mere absence of treaties for the Mosaic period does
1 Weinfeld, Deuteronomy and the Deuteronomic School, p. 156.
2 See above, p. 170. Cf. Ps 95:8-11; Heb 3:7-4:11.
3 See above, pp. 162-63. The influence of Egyptian cults was a
large factor in the apostasies between the time of the exodus and the
conquest of
cept of Israelite apostasy.
175
not necessitate a date-identifying criterion based upon the division
between two sets of treaties because of a break in the continuous
stream of evidence.1
The Esarhaddon Vassal Treaties
These vassal treaties have been reconstructed from more than
350 clay tablet fragments discovered in 1955 at
in
taining the same text but with different vassals. The tablets are per-
haps the largest in the Assyrian dialect and the texts the lengthiest
of any Assyrian treaty. They are also unique in that they are totally
given over to the establishment of the successor of Esarhaddon. They
comprise Esarhaddon's last will and testament.2 The vassals were from
"bordering frontier states in
the text of these treaties:4
A. Introduction: identifying participants (lines 1-12)
B. Seal Impressions: authenticating the document
1. Sennacherib's Seal (being utilized by Esarhaddon)
2. Ashur's Seal (the national deity)
3. A Middle Assyrian Royal Seal (Tukulti-Ninurta? dynastic?)
C. Divine Witnesses (lines 13-40)
D. Stipulations (lines 41-413)
1. Ensuring the loyalty of the vassal to the successor (lines
41-129)
1 McCarthy, Treaty and Covenant, p. 153.
2 Frankena, "Vassal-Treaties," pp. 122-24.
3 Wiseman, Vassal-Treaties of Esarhaddon,
4 Cf. ibid., pp. 13-27 (see, also, p. 3); Frankena, "Vassal-
Treaties," p. 124.
176
2. Detailing treatment of rebels (lines 130-211)
3. Preventing usurpation of the throne (lines 212-317)
4. Prohibiting intrigue within the royal family against the
successor (lines 318-76)
5. Emphasizing binding nature of the oaths taken (lines 377-
413; cf. lines 283-301)
E. Curses (lines 414-668')
1. Invocation of deities bringing curses (lines 414-93)
a. Individual deities specified (lines 414-71)
b. The deities in general (lines 472-93)
2. Parenthesis: vassal's oath of fidelity (lines 494-512)
3. Invocation of deities bringing curses together with the
similes illustrating and emphasizing the curses (lines
513-668')
F. Colophon (lines 669'-674')
Comparison with Leviticus 26
One of the first items of comparison to be noted concerning the
vassal treaties of Esarhaddon and Leviticus 26 is the similarity of the
overall literary structure. The following outline (employing the head-
ings given in the outline of the vassal treaties) of Leviticus 26 is a
possible representation of the organization of its material:
A. Introduction (25:55)1
C. Divine Witness (26:ld, 2c; Selbstvorstellungsformel)
D. Stipulations (vv. labc, 2ab)
E. Curses (vv. 14-38)
F. Colophon (v. 46)
Obviously, the pericope in Leviticus contains some elements distinct from
the vassal treaties: blessings (vv. 3-13), provision for reinstatement
in case of transgression (vv. 14-45; esp., vv. 39-45), monotheism,
1 See above, p. 44.
177
and covenantal precedents (vv. 42, 45). It should also be noted that
Leviticus 26 does not contain imprecations requested by a third party
before a mediating deity nor does it contain ritual magic.1
Grammatically, Leviticus 26 and the Esarhaddon treaties are
similar because of extensive conditional constructions:2
Protasis Apodosis
Vassal treaties: lines 62-4133 lines 414-668'
Leviticus 26: v. 3 vv. 4-12
vv. 14-15 vv. 16-384
In the contents of their curses, Leviticus 26 and the Esarhaddon
treaties also contain some similarities:
Vassal Treaties Leviticus 26
Disease/Uncleanness lines 419-21, 455- vv. 16, 25
56,5 461-63, 470,
480, 626-31
Darkness/Blindness lines 422-24, 485- v. 16
86
Loss of Goods lines 428-30 v. 16
Drought lines 440-41, 528 v. 19
33,6 563-66, 652-
55
1 Cf. McCarthy, Treaty and Covenant, pp. 149-51, 294-95 n. 39.
2 Cf. Frankena, "Vassal-Treaties," p. 125.
3 All but three clauses/sections (marked off by horizontal lines
on the tablets) commence with summa "if." Cf. GAG, pp. 212-14 (§161),
240 §185g).
4 See above, pp. 90-91, 161.
5 Cf. especially Lev 26:25.
6 Cf. especially these lines. See, also, Deut 28:23-24.
178
Famine lines 444-48, 480, v. 26
641-42, 652-55
Cannibalism lines 448-50, 547- v. 291
50, 568-72
Defeat lines 453-54, 534- vv. 16, 17, 19,
36,2 573-78, 612- 31, 32, 36, 37
17
Ravaging Animals lines 599-600, 635- v. 22
36
Destruction of Cities lines 545-46 v. 33
Fearfulness/Restless- lines 461-63(?), vv. 36-38
ness 487, 637-40
Stench(?)/Rejection lines 603-5 v. 31
(sacrificial?)
Sword lines 456-583 vv. 25, 33, 36,
37
The vassal treaties of Esarhaddon have no mention of exile4 although
that is the ultimate curse in Leviticus 26. The "uncircumcised heart"
of Leviticus 26:41 is the opposite of the vassal treaties' requisite of
a faithful or loyal heart (lines 51-53, 98-99, 152, 169, 185, 310, 390).5
The legal concept of tyrb Myqh "establish a covenant" (Lev 26:9) is the
equivalent of sakanu ade "make a covenant" (lines 12, 41-42, 96, 104,
132, 175).6 Likewise, the concept of tyrb rkz "remember a covenant"
1 Cf. Deut 28:53-57. See Weinfeld, Deuteronomy and the Deutero-
nomic
2 Cf. especially Lev 26:37.
3 Cf. the "flaming sword" (line 458) and "sword" of vengeance
(Lev 26:25).
4 Line 295, however, could be interpreted as exile (ana salali
"for carrying away/ravaging/plundering"). Wiseman (Vassal-Treaties of
Esarhaddon, p. 52) translates the phrase, "to be carried off."
5 Cf. Frankena, "Vassal-Treaties," pp. 140-41.
6 Cf. Weinf eld: TDOT, s.v. "tyriB;," by M. Weinfeld, 2:260.
179
(Lev 26:42, 45) is equivalent to nasaru ade "guard a covenant" (lines
291-92).1
Amidst all that appears so similar between Leviticus 26 and the
Esarhaddon vassal treaties, there is very little that is identical or
demonstrably interdependent. The nearest parallel to unprecedented
similarity is the "ground like iron . . . brazen heaven" (qaqqaru ki
AN.BAR . . . AN sa ZABAR, lines 528, 530) and "heavens like iron . . .
ground like bronze" (hwHnk Crx . . . lzrbk Mymw, Lev 26:19). The order
of the Assyrian is maintained in Deuteronomy 28:23, though Leviticus is
different. The forms and the scarcity of the occurrences indicate that
the individual occurrences are independent of each other.2
Three similarities between Leviticus 26 and the vassal treaties
are helpful in interpreting the biblical pericope: (1) qyrl "for no
benefit" (Lev 26:16, 20) may be understood as a lack of satisfaction for
the stomach by comparing it to libbikunu liriqu "may your insides be
empty" (line 642). (2) rbd "plague" (Lev 26:25) was translated by Tar-
gum Onqelos as xntvm and by the Syriac Peshitta as , both of
which may be translated "death" or "deadly pestilence."3 Both transla-
tions are identical to the Assyrian mutanu (line 456). (3) The picture
of ten women using one oven in Leviticus 26:26 is paralleled by line 444:
"may there be no mill nor oven in your houses."4
1 TDOT, s.v. "tyriB;," by M. Weinfeld, 2:260.
2 Cf. Weinfeld, Deuteronomy and the Deuteronomic School, pp. 116-
17; Hillers, Treaty-Curses, pp. 41-42.
3 See above, p. 110 (especially the Septuagint translation).
4 Other helpful interpretive parallels may occur in the vassal
treaties, but these stood out as having the most immediate significance.
180
The Sefire Inscriptions
These inscriptions are comprised of three stelas from the north
Syrian
ments obtained in 1930 from a dealer in
in the
and language. The treaty (or treaties) preserved on these three stelas
are between Mati’el, king of Arpad (the vassal), and Bir-Ga’yah, king of
KTK (the overlord).1
The following is an outline comparing the contents of the three
stelas:2
Stela I Stela II Stela III
A. Introduction A 1-6
B. Divine Witnesses A 6-14
C. Curses A 14-35 A 1?-14?
D. Inviolability of Treaty B 1-13?
E. Stipulations B 14?-45 B 1?-19? III 1-30
F. Memorial C 1-7
G. Blessings C ?-16
H. Preservation C 16-25 C 1?-17
Sections A, B, C, and E are similar to sections A, C, E, and D (respec-
tively) of the Esarhaddon vassal treaties.3 Section G is particularly
1 Fitzmyer, Aramaic Inscriptions of Sefire, pp. 1-3; Gibson,
Textbook, 2:18-19.
2 The numbering of the lines and sections follow Fitzmyer. The
question mark (?) indicates fragmentary lines and sections of unknown
extent.
3 See above, pp. 175-76.
181
of interest regarding the blessings in Leviticus 26:3-13. Though the
three stelas are related, there are variations in what has been pre-
served from the original stelas. Thus, all that remains of Stela III is
the section of stipulations which is more extensive in its subject mat-
ter than the parallel sections of both I and II.
Comparison with Leviticus 26
As with the vassal treaties of Esarhaddon, there are similarities
between the Sefire texts and Leviticus 26. Although there are both bles-
sings and curses in the Sefire and Leviticus texts (as opposed to only
curses in the Esarhaddon texts), the overall literary structure of the
Sefire inscriptions is different from that of Leviticus 26 (which was
similar to the Esarhaddon treaties1). All of the divergences from the
vassal treaties by Leviticus 26 (except the blessings) are true also of
a comparison with the Sefire treaties.2
Grammatical similarities between the Sefire stelas and Leviti-
cus 26 include: (1) at least one case of an alternation of qtl and yqtl
in III 20 (bwhx. . . bwh "he has restored . . . I will restore");3
(2) the occurrence of the casus pendens at III 7 and III 19;4 and,
1 See above, pp. 175-76.
2 See above, pp. 176-77.
3 This syntactical feature is found throughout Leviticus 26.
See above, pp. 58, 82, 162.
4 This construction is employed in Lev 26:26, 36, and 39, as
well as in Esarhaddon's vassal treaties, lines 283, 328?, 606, and 618.
See above, pp. 135, 1,42. 162. See, also, Fitzmyer, Aramaic Inscriptions
of Sefire, p. 170; Gibson, Textbook, 2:25.
182
(3) the employment of mainly yqtl in the protases and qtl in the apo-
doses of the conditional sentences.1
The following may be identified as curse similarities:
Seftre Stelas Leviticus 26
Famine/No Satisfaction I A 22-23; v. 26
II A 1-3
Ravaging Animals I A 27, 30-32; v. 22
II A 9
Drought I A 28-29 v. 19
Defeat I A 38-39 vv. 16, 17, 19,
31, 32, 36, 37
Blindness I A 39 v. 16
Death/Bodies (rgp) I B 30; v. 30
II B 11
Extermination (dbx) I B 36 v. 38
Sword of Vengeance III 11-14, 22 v. 25
There is no discernible mention of exile in the Sefire stelas. The num-
ber "seven" plays an important role in the stelas (I A 21-27; II A 1-6)
as in Leviticus 26 (vv. 18, 21, 24, 28). The reference to "oppressive
torment" (blf CHl, II C 10) has no equivalent phrase in Leviticus 26,
but has the concept of humiliation2 by the enemy.3 This is reminiscent
of the thought behind Leviticus 26:17, 19, and 37. In Stela II C 10,
"oppressive torment" is the means of death.
The most significant parallel between the Sefire texts and Levi-
1 Fitzmyer, Aramaic Inscriptions of Sefire, pp. 170, 173. Qtl in
the protasis occurs in Sefire III 20 and Lev 26:23, 27, and 40.
2 Cf. Jastrow, Dictionary, 2:1080 (blf).
3 Cf. BDB, pp. 537-38 (CHl).
183
ticus 26 occurs in the mention of the bodies/corpses (rgp) in I B 30
and II B 11 as compared to Leviticus 26:30. The phraseologies appear
as follows:
rgp lfm xbrx rgpv (I B 30)
and I shall pile (lit., multiply) corpse upon corpse
rgp lf j . . rgpv (II B 11)
and corpse . . . upon corpse
Mkylvlg yrgp-lf Mkyrgp-tx yttnv (Lev 26:30)
and I shall put your corpses upon the corpses/lifeless forms
of your filthy idols
Interestingly, neither Fitzmyer,1 Donner and Rollig,2 nor Greenfield3
offer any reference to Leviticus 26:30 in their discussions of the Sefire
phrases! An additional similarity may be observed in a parallel example
of syntax taken from a Mari letter,4 in which nadanu "give" parallels
the biblical Ntn "give/put/pile(?)." If
conclusion that the idiom (noun x + "upon" + noun x + verb5) means "to
add to that already on hand,"6 the biblical picture would be of dead
bodies being added to bodies already present due to the previous four
stages of chastisement.
1 Fitzmyer, Aramaic Inscriptions of Sefire, pp. 68-69, 89.
2 KAI, 2:256, 261.
3 Jonas C.
JSS 11 (1966):103-5.
4 Ibid., p. 104.
5 Ibid.
as following in the construction. In Lev 26:30 Ntn precedes.
6 Ibid.
184
Conclusions
Leviticus 26 appears to be most similar in literary structure
to the vassal treaties of Esarhaddon.1 However, the "provincial"2 (as
opposed to political) features are a little more evident in the Sefire
stelas and Leviticus 26 than in the vassal treaties of Esarhaddon. This
latter fact reflects the localized treaty in northern
parties in the Sefire stelas and the emphasis on the land in Leviticus
26. However, it must be admitted that the Esarhaddon treaties also
reflect a large amount of curse material related to the land even though
the parties are international. On the other hand, blessings are present
in the Sefire materials but lacking in the Esarhaddon texts. This mix-
ture of similarity and diversity demonstrates the independent composi-
tion of all three materials. There is mutual dependence upon a common
literary, linguistic, and cultural milieu drawn upon by the respective
writers in their different ways, for their different purposes, and at
their different times.
Thus, the diversity cautions against making too much of simi-
larities, whether in form or content. The similarity aids in understand-
ing the concepts and intentions of the respective documents. Leviticus
26 is more clearly understood in the literary, linguistic, and cultural
setting of the ancient near eastern treaties. The particular examples
of similarity, however, are not from the same historical setting.3
1 See above, pp. 175-76.
2 Weinfeld, Deuteronomy and the Deuteronomic School, pp. 123-26.
3 The similarities between the Esarhaddon vassal treaties, Sefire
stelas, and Deuteronomy 27-29 (Palestinian Covenant) are discussed in
detail by Weinfeld (Deuteronomy and the Deuteronomic School). The student
is encouraged to look there and in Hillers, Treaty-Curses, for those com-
parisons which would supplement studies in Leviticus 26.
CHAPTER V
A SYSTEMATIC SYNTHESIS OF THE THEOLOGICAL
CONCEPTS OF LEVITICUS 26
No study of the biblical text is complete until the teachings of
the particular pericope have been identified and the truths have been
discussed regarding the effect they were intended to have upon the
lives of those who received them. Only then can any valid application
be made to the lives of those who receive them today. Those basic truths
are best discerned after a thorough examination of the pericope textu-
ally, exegetically, and comparatively (i.e., analyzed with respect to
its historico-cultural context). Chapters II, III, and IV have pro-
vided these analyses in order that the present synthesis might be pre-
sented.
Major theological concepts have been touched upon throughout the
exegetical analysis of Leviticus 26 (Chapter. IV). However, these con-
cepts and their various internal aspects have been presented in a frag-
mentary fashion (verse by verse). This chapter will undertake summaries
of these major concepts in order to place the fragments into one picture.
The following theological concepts and their related topics will
be discussed: (1) Covenant (Abrahamic, Mosaic, Palestinian covenants;
land; Heilsgeschicht; breach and preservation); (2) Law (relation to
covenant; prohibition of idolatry and observance of sabbaths); (3) Yah-
weh (Selbstvorstellungsformel; relation to covenant; presence and
185
186
sanctuary); (4) Promise (blessing and curse; obedience and disobedi-
ence; guilt; retribution and chastisement; exile); (5) Repentance
(restitution); and, (6) Revelation (Leviticus 26 and the New Testament).
Covenant
"Covenant" (tyrb) is employed eight times in Leviticus 26 (vv.
9, 15, 25, 42 ter, 44, 45). It always denotes a binding relationship
of Yahweh to his people
a life which had a goal and with a history which had a meaning. In all
its occurrences in this pericope, "covenant" promotes the concept of
the sovereignty of the covenant-giver, Yahweh. In six of the eight
uses of the term, the first person singular suffix ("my") is attached.
Always the antecedent of the first person is Yahweh himself. This
emphasizes the unilateral nature of the ratification of the covenants.
Yahweh himself established them, and he alone. Yahweh's personal inter-
vention into the history of
His lordship is personal. His lordship is absolute. The covenant lays
hold of the whole man and demands his unconditional surrender to the will
of God. The loyalty to the covenant must be more than an outward
acquiescence, it must be an inward reality. The "uncircumcised heart"
(v. 41) is the antithesis of this loyalty.1
Abrahamic Covenant
Yahweh's covenant with Abraham appears to underly the references
to "covenant" in verses 9, 42, and 44. The theme of fruitfulness/popu-
lation is that of Genesis 17:6, 7, 19, 21 (cf., also, Exod 6:4 and Deut
1 See above, p. 146, quote from Kline, By Oath Consigned.
187
8:18). The specification of Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob in verse 42 fur-
ther emphasizes the necessity for recognizing the role of the Abrahamic
Covenant in the blessings and cursings of Leviticus 26. That covenant
may also be in view at verse 44 in the promise of Yahweh not to cause
any breach of the covenant from the divine perspective.
As the blessings of verses 3-12 are at least in part a fulfill-
ment of the covenant made with Abraham, so the curses of verses 4-38 are
at least in part a removal of the Abrahamic promises.1 The basis for
Yahweh's historical extraction of
Covenant. As the nation resided at
covenant as part of their theological heritage. They could see for them-
selves the commencement of the historical application of its promises
to them in reality.
The Abrahamic Covenant demonstrated that
tity was not of their own making. That covenant provided them with the
hope of landedness at a time when they were landless. Verses 1-13
revealed to
Mosaic Covenant) did not nullify the Abrahamic Covenant. The summariz-
ing concept of the Abrahamic Covenant was the land of promise (v. 42).
The Mosaic Covenant would not conflict with the landedness promised long
before.
Even the phraseology of covenant disloyalty ("uncircumcised
heart," v. 41) was a reflection of the impact of the Abrahamic Covenant
on the theology and life of
festation of inward commitment to the Abrahamic Covenant. Personal
1 See above, pp. 140-41.
188
commitment and accountability were implicit even in the unilateral pact
which Yahweh made with Abraham while the latter was in a deep sleep
(Gen 15:12-21). Divine sovereignty and human responsibility are not
opposing concepts in the biblical covenants. Indeed, it was because
Yahweh was the sovereign lord that the human vassal must obey him. The
human accountability would be nonexistent (at least, nonbinding) if it
were not for the divine character. The lordship manifested to Abraham
was not altered by subsequent covenants. Since the sovereignty (lord-
ship) of God is not altered, neither are the promises of his covenant
with Abraham altered or nullified (cf. Gal 3:17).
Sinaitic Covenant
The prominence of the immediate historical context and the legal
character of the terms ("statutes, commandments," v. 3; "commandments,
statutes, ordinances," vv. 14-15; "statutes, ordinances, laws," v. 46)
direct attention to the Mosaic Covenant made with
The very precepts of verses 1-2 demand that the Mosaic Covenant is in
view (prohibition of idols, observance of sabbaths, and reverence for
the sanctuary). If there is any doubt, it is removed by the clear state-
ments of verses 15, 45, and 46. This legal emphasis explains the provi-
sion for official covenant vengeance in verse 25. It also promotes the
sense of lordship which was already present in the Abrahamic Covenant.
This covenant at Sinai was based upon the historical deliverance of
nant (vv. 13, 45). It was intended to identify the people of Yahweh.
This supplemented the Abrahamic Covenant's identification of the land.
As the outward seal/sign of the Abrahamic Covenant was circumcision, so
the seal/sign of the Sinaitic Covenant was the observance of the sabbaths
189
(cf. Leviticus 25; 26:2, 34-35, 43). The seal/sign of each covenant
affected the realm emphasized by the other covenant: the covenant of
the land (Abrahamic) was related directly to the people by circumcision,
and the covenant of the people (Mosaic) was related directly to the land
by the sabbaths. Thus the two aspects of these two covenants (the land
and the people) were bound together. The land was for the people, and
the people for the land.
The legislation connected with the Mosaic Covenant inculcated
a seriousness about submission to the divine overlord. It also incul-
cated a humility about the unworthiness of
people of God, the chosen people. Right behavior in the people of Yah-
weh was a means of participating in the testimony before the nations
which had begun with Yahweh's miraculous deliverance of the nation out
of
belonging to Yahweh, the exodus-causer.
Disobedience to the absolute sovereign of
would result in the removal of the covenant blessings associated with
the Mosaic Covenant as well as those associated with the Abrahamic Cove-
nant.1 Sinai was but the commencement of this relationship. God and
the nation must identify with each other if the wilderness years were
to lead to the promised landedness of
only served to remind the nation why Yahweh gave them legislation. They
needed standards. Without the order of those standards, there would be
chaos and anarchy. Indeed, spiritual anarchy and apostasy are the same.
The nation must be prepared for their inheritance, the land. The means
1 See above, pp. 165-66.
2 See above, p. 163.
190
of preparation would be instruction, parenesis. Instruction is the
primary concept of the Hebrew hrvt "law" (v. 46). The emphasis of
the parenesis provided by Leviticus 26 was on identification with the
covenant deity/suzerain, Yahweh (cf. v. 45).
Palestinian Covenant1
The many parallels of Leviticus 26 with Deuteronomy 27-30 pre-
sent the reader with a problem of relationship. How is this covenant
related to this pericope? The similarities of structure (blessing and
cursing), the revelation of the ultimate chastisement for breach of
covenant (exile preceded by siege which deteriorates to cannibalism),
and a time sphere subsequent to the impartation of the Mosaic Covenant
demonstrate a relationship in content. However, similarity is not
identity. No third covenant is ratified in Leviticus 26. No third
covenant is described in terms of a relationship to the past covenant
(Abrahamic) and the present covenant (Mosaic). The connotation of a
future covenant may be present; however, that connotation could not be
identified with Deuteronomy 27-30 by those who received Leviticus 26.
Leviticus 26 may be considered a prophetic preview of the Palestinian
Covenant only in the sense that the basic theological concepts of that
covenant are present in the pericope. However, Leviticus 26 does not
specify that covenant per se. Leviticus 26 does not prophetically
announce a future covenant on the plains of
Revelation is progressive in nature. The seeds of one age
become the flowers of yet another age. The seed of the Palestinian
Covenant are present in Leviticus 26. The blessings and cursings of
1 See above, pp. 3-4.
191
Leviticus 26 were transitional. They prepared
while in the wilderness. The transitional revelation would be expanded
and formalized (in a covenant) upon arrival at the threshhold of the
land (the plains of
Covenant), the constitution for the people of the land (the Mosaic Cove-
nant), and the rights to the riches of the land (the Palestinian Cove-
nant) would then provide the nation with all the revelation necessary
to live within the land itself.
Land
Every gift to the nation of
obligation before the covenant suzerain, Yahweh. The land grant to
giver was summoning the people to service. The summons was both bene-
ficial and binding. The benefits were conditioned upon obedience to
the command of Yahweh. The enslaved nation was delivered from
and placed within a context of bond slavery to Yahweh (v. 13). The prior
bondage differed from the latter in that the latter brought blessing (vv.
3-12). No such rewards occurred as a result of Egyptian bondage.
The land grant predated the existence of
land grant was presented to Abraham at his exodus from
national entity of
exodus from
of God in history. "From the roughly 160 cases in which biblical pas-
sages speak of Jahweh's giving the land to
tain references to 'the father."'1 It is significant, therefore, that
1 J. N. M. Wijngaards, The Dramatization of Salvific History in
the Deuteronomic Schools, CTS 16 (Leiden: E. J. Brill, 1969), p. 73.
192
"the ancestors" (v. 45) is employed of the Mosaic Covenant in this
pericope. This establishes a continuity of covenant. As the Abra-
hamic Covenant was being claimed by the descendants of Abraham at Mt.
Sinai, so, in the future days, an exiled people would repent and claim
the covenant made with their ancestors at Sinai. The claiming of the
relationship as the people of Yahweh would then restore them to a posi-
tion from which a restoration to the land itself could be accomplished.
The land was the setting for the blessings (vv. 4-12) as well
as for the curses (vv. 14-38). The promises of reward and retribution
could not be fulfilled elsewhere. The landedness of
tial to their fulfillment.
without the land. On the other hand,
the land until they had possessed it.
The land was a separate entity from the people. It could be the
recipient of the restitution of sabbaths which it had been denied (vv.
34-35, 43). It was a land belonging first to Yahweh. He gave it to
tion which was disloyal to the covenant could be removed from the land
(vv. 33-44). Yet, the land would remain, kept in store for the future
generation which would obey the precepts of Yahweh. The people may come
and go, but the land would abide as the concrete substance of the cove-
nant of Yahweh with Abraham. The sabbaths of
preserve the fruitfulness of the land (cf. Leviticus 25). Disobedience
to Yahweh's sabbatical legislation was a transgression against the land.
Even more, it was a transgression against future generations because the
breach of the sabbaths was a greediness which would rob the land of its
fruitfulness for those future generations.
193
Landedness brought the perils of self-sufficiency, idolatry,
and sabbath breaking. The only remedy for such temptations was to
remember the history of the people and of the land. Remembering the
covenant deeds of Yahweh would remind the people that the land they
enjoyed was an unearned gift. The exiled people, remembering the lord
of the land, would confess their guilt and make restitution (vv. 40-41).
Their remembering (i.e., preservation of covenant obedience) would
result in Yahweh's remembering the land (v. 42; i.e., preservation
of covenant blessing).
At
land presented hope. In the land, the land presented a challenge. The
challenge was to exercise faith in the god of the covenant. That faith
had not been exhibited by those who apostasized at Sinai and who fell
in the wilderness.
Heilsgeschicht
Heilsgeschicht ("salvation history") was the foundation of the
Mosaic Covenant (vv. 13, 45). Yahweh is the god of history. He is the
sovereign lord of time and of place. The history of
divine deliverance and divine election. Nothing which
was a result of her own work. Yahweh as Creator and Giver had associ-
ated himself with this nation through grace. The god of history could
control all history. He could even move entire nations to chastise the
disobedient
that she could be returned to her land. The god of history could pre-
pare the nations for the exiled people (cf. Joseph, Gen 50:20). The
nations would receive the scattered Israelites (Lev 26:33) and would
make them vanish (v. 38). Yet, Yahweh would preserve a remnant so that
194
a new history could begin.
controls all time, places, and nations.
Breach and Preservation of Covenant
could not (v. 44). The "uncircumcised heart" (v. 41) of disobedient
He is always faithful because he is "Yahweh their God" (v. 44).
of the Mosaic Covenant (v. 15). Idolatry and sabbath breaking especi-
ally constituted a breach of covenant (vv. 1-2). Such a breach would
be willful. It would involve the nullification of the promises of
blessing associated with the Abrahamic Covenant and the identification
associated with the Mosaic Covenant. Any infraction of Mosaic legisla-
tion was rebellion against the sovereign will of the suzerain-legislator,
Yahweh.
Yahweh, however, "remembers" (rkz) his covenants. He preserves
the covenants. The covenant contained both blessing and cursing. The
blessing was initiated by promise, and the cursing was initiated by
legislation. The promise reflected divine sovereignty; the legislation
reflected human responsibility. When
remained faithful. The preservation of covenant by the suzerain clearly
identifies the failure of the vassal to submit. The history of cove-
nant confirms both divine dependability and human accountability. The
Abrahamic Covenant was identified as a covenant with roots in the history
of
before Isaac, it was granted to Abraham. Verse 42 presents this con-
firmation of prior history. As the Abrahamic Covenant was preserved
195
(and would continue to be preserved), so the Mosaic Covenant would be
preserved for future generations (v. 45). Yahweh's deeds in history
illustrate his faithfulness.
Law
Religious enthusiasm is not sufficient for the active partici-
pation in the covenant relationship with God. Enthusiasm without iden-
tification leads to confusion. Identification produces unity. At Mt.
Sinai, the apostasies of the golden calf, the strange fire, and blas-
phemy demonstrated what an unguided and unstructured religious fervor
can produce. The emphasis of the entire law of God is upon Yahweh him-
self. Any breach of the law is a defiance of the law-giver, Yahweh.
The stipulations of the law exhibit the nature and personality of the
law-giver. The morality of the law is a reflection of the morality of
God. All of the precepts are grounded in the faith of
faith consisted of God's identity as the creator of the heavens and
earth, the promise-giver, the land-giver, the exodus-causer. Every
statute was a testimony to the election of the people and a witness to
their identification with their sovereign lord, Yahweh.
All the terms employed for law in Leviticus 26 (hqH/qH "statute";
hvcm "commandment"; Fpwm "ordinance"; hrvt "law/instruction") represent
the entire law as promulgated at
preserved" (rmw) , "obeyed" (fmw) , "walked in/ordering the life" (jlh) ,
and "practiced/performed/done" (hWf) (cf. vv. 3, 14-15). Therefore,
the law did not serve as an ornamentation. It was a constitution. The
nation of
of Yahweh's commandments.
The legislation promulgated at Sinai was not contrary to the
196
promise given to Abraham. The legal covenant (Mosaic) supplemented
the promissory covenant (Abrahamic). The latter did not nullify the
former. The legislation was a means of emphasizing the suzerainty of
Yahweh. It reaffirmed his lordship over his people prior to their
entry into the land promised to Abraham's seed.
Relation to Covenant
As already observed,1 law supplemented covenant. Stipulations
were a part of the treaty form in the ancient Near East. The suzerain
could thereby identify himself as the overlord, the one with the
authority to establish the calendar, ordain boundaries, grant life, or
deal out death. Without legislation, the authority would not be clari-
fied. Every covenant must have an authority in which it resides, an
authority capable of meting out the punishment required for breach of
the covenant. A covenant is nor more lasting than its ratifier. A cove-
nant is nor more binding than the might of the ratifier. A covenant is
not wiser or more moral than its ratifier. The ratifier of the cove-
nants with Abraham and Moses was Yahweh himself. The covenants are his
covenants (cf. "my covenant," vv. 9, 15, 42, 44), and the laws are his
laws (cf. first person singular suffix on terms for law in vv. 3 and 15).
Prohibition of Idolatry
Verse 1 of the pericope clearly prohibited all forms of idolatry.
The prohibition emphatically identified the true nature of faith in Yah-
weh. Such faith recognizes the exclusivity of Yahweh's deity and rule.
No idolater can truly worship Yahweh. Yahweh's deity was thus defined
as preeminence (as the creator of heavens and earth). All forms of
1 See above, pp. 188-90, 195-96.
197
mystical or magical ritual fall short of true worship. Yahweh created
and controls all the natural forces of the world. He is the rain-giver
and the rain-withholder (vv. 4, 19). He is the controller of wild
beasts (vv. 6, 22). He is the controller of the nations (vv. 7-8, 16-
17, 33, 38). He knows the heart and its motives (vv. 36, 41). He is
the destroyer of idols and idol worship (v. 30). Magic and its attend-
ant rituals in the ancient Near East involved the concept that the
divinities were unable to be self-sufficient. In fact, the worshippers
of the pagan idols were the manipulators of the divinities behind the
idols. Not so with Yahweh--Yahweh is controlled by no man. Yahweh
controls history, nature, life, death, and man.
The revelation of the true nature of idols and idolatry initiated
the parenesis in Leviticus 26: Idolatry is powerless/empty; idolatry is
man-produced (v.1).1 Idolatry is blatant, filthy, deadly (v. 30).2
Idolatry is doomed to destruction and the idolater is destined to die.
Idolatry is the willful rebellion against the person of Yahweh. It is
the usurpation of Yahweh's rightful sovereignty. The one engaging in
such activities against Yahweh is a covenant breaker, a rebel, an
anarchist, and a conspirator. In the treaties of the ancient Near East
it was a capital offense to aid in the usurpation of a throne or to
engage in intrigue to supplant the true heir to the throne. It is by
far a more serious crime to defy the unique sovereignty of the creator
of the universe and the god of all history. The idolater has chosen the
way of the uncircumcised nations (cf. v. 41), therefore he will be eaten
1 See above, pp. 45-47.
2 See above, pp. 118-23.
198
up by those nations (v. 38) among which he will be exiled (v. 33).
Their guilt, their treason, will cause them great anguish (v. 39). The
only way to be restored to Yahweh's favor will be by confessions, humil-
ity, and restitution (vv. 40-41). The confession must be to filthy
idolatry. The humility must be produced by the realization that they
cannot manipulate Yahweh, The restitution must consist of allowing
Yahweh and his land the place of priority in their lives.
Observance of Sabbaths
"Sabbaths" is plural throughout the pericope (vv. 2, 34-35, 43).
The reference is undoubtedly intended to include all the sabbaths men-
tioned in the preceding context (chapters 23-25): weekly and annual
sabbaths (including the year of jubilee).
"Any Old Testament theology must pay attention to the way in
which the faith of the Old Testament hears the commandment of its God
in its liturgical ordinances."1 The calendar of
oriented. Yahweh is the god of time as well as the god of space. The
sabbath honored the lord of time. The sabbath entrusted provision to
the lord of all things. Lordship was the core of the sabbatical prin-
ciple. To trust the Lord to provide for the seventh day, the seventh
year, and the forty-ninth and fiftieth years, was to recognize his power
and wisdom. He who provided in the wilderness also proclaimed the sab-
batical principle prior to the wilderness. The instruction for
was simple: "Trust me to provide. I am Yahweh. I will not lead you
where I cannot care for you." God never demands what man is unable to
do. He provides the way of service. He blesses the path of obedience.
1 Zimmerli, Old Testament Theology, p. 125.
199
Sabbath in the Old Testament was more than an expression of the verti-
cal relationship to the lord of all creation. It was also an expression
of concern and care for those who were fellow participants in the cove-
nant (cf. Leviticus 25).
The sabbatical principle was the test, the seal/sign, of the
obedience demanded under the Mosaic Covenant. The legal covenant repre-
sented the legislative authority of Yahweh. The sabbath represented
Yahweh's authority over time. It was the legislation of time.
Even the land needed restitution when the time which Yahweh
demanded for it was not granted by
lord of the land as well as the people. The land was a promised pos-
session in a time-space continuum. Breach of the sabbatical principle
regarding the land was evidence of rebellion against the lord of time
and space. The violation of the land by denying its just recompense was
a violation of Yahweh's gift of fruitfulness. It was robbery because
it denied continued fruitfulness for future generations of Abraham's
seed. The liberty proclaimed in the sabbatical principle was an echo
of the Heilsgeschicht. The god of history delivered
tude in
that freedom was to deny the lord who brought them out of
13; 25:38, 42, 55).
Yahweh
Yahweh is clearly the god of the covenants in Leviticus 26.
"Yahweh" (hvhy) is employed six times in the pericope (vv. 1, 2, 13, 44,
45, 46). Twice it is used absolutely (vv. 2, 46). Four times it is
connected directly with or associated by context with "your/their God"
(Myhlx, vv. 1, 13, 44, 45). In four of these occurrences, Yahweh is
200
mentioned in relation to the Mosaic Covenant (vv. 1, 2, 45, 46). In
two cases, Yahweh is associated with the Abrahamic Covenant (vv. 13
and 44).
Selbstvorstellungsformel
Selbstvorstellungsformel ("self-introduction formula") is a
means of setting off this particular pericope. It is often mixed with
the heilsgeschichtliche Formulierung ("salvation-history formula"). In
all cases (vv. 1, 2, 13, 44, 45), it is employed as a conclusion to a
section of the pericope. The precepts of verses 1-2 are so marked,
the blessings of verses 3-12, and, also, the penalties of verses 14-45.
The only mention of Yahweh outside either one of these two formulas is
in the postscript (v. 46) where Yahweh is the giver of the laws can-
mitted to Moses for
tion in the section concerning precept (vv. 1-2) is an obvious contrast
to the idolatry forbidden there. Yahweh is the covenant name of the
covenant-giver (cf. Exod 3:13-18; also, Gen 12:1, 4; 15:1-8; Exod
20:2, 7). "I am Yahweh" is the divine seal on the covenants involved
in Leviticus 26. Covenant preservation is dependent upon Yahweh's
identity (vv. 44-45).
Yahweh is the author of the precepts (v. 46; cf. vv. 1-2), the
author of the history (vv. 13, 45), and the author of the covenant (v.
44). His authority is absolute. His covenants are dependable. He is
the author of both the blessing and the curse, the reward and the retri-
bution.
201
Relation to Covenant
Yahweh's relationship to the covenants of Leviticus 26 is estab-
lished by the following: (1) the Selbstvorstellungsformel, (2) the
heilsgeschichtliche Formulierung, (3) the attribution of the source of
the laws at Sinai (v. 46), and (4) the first person singular suffixes on
"covenant" in the pericope.
Presence and Sanctuary
The presence of Yahweh is referred to by means of "presence"
(Mynp, v. 17), "walk among you" (jvtb jlhth, v. 12), "sanctuary" (wdqm,
v. 2), and "tabernacle" (Nkwm, v. 11). His presence works both weal
(vv. 11-12) and woe (v. 17). His presence is both edifice-oriented1
(vv. 2, 11) and people-oriented (vv. 12, 17). His presence is holy
(note the employment of the root wdq "holy" in wdqm "sanctuary"). That
connotation of holiness is particularly striking because it is in a con-
text of the precepts involving prohibition of idolatry and observance of
sabbaths. Yahweh is holy because he is set apart from idols and his
presence is distinct from idols. Also, he is holy because sabbatical
time is set apart for him.
The implication of verses 14-45 is that when disobedient
is confronted by the punishment-dealing presence of Yahweh, he has ceased
to "walk among" them or to tabernacle among them. Indeed, he is pictured,
as "walking in opposition" (yrq ymf jlh, vv. 24, 28) to them.
Even though his presence or sanctuary is not with the exiles
among the nations (at least not in the same fashion as when they were
1 By "edifice-oriented" the writer does not mean that Yahweh is
edifice-limited. The edifice was merely an accommodation to focus atten-
tion upon Yahweh's presence among his people. Cf. Ezek 10:3-19, 11:22-
23; 43:1-5.
202
obedient and in the land), yet Yahweh will preserve his covenant with
them (v. 44).
Promise
Promise here is being used in a very broad sense of the term.
It is being employed to cover both the promise of blessing and the pro-
mise to curse. It is in the sense of fulfillment or commitment as much
as in the sense of hope or expectancy.
Promise in Leviticus 26 is identified with the solemn divine
self-introduction (Selbstvorstellung) of the god of Abraham, Isaac, and
Jacob (vv. 1, 2, 13, 44, 45; cf. v. 42). It is a promise preceding
the history of deliverance from
entrace into
a reference to something inward and spiritual, but a reference to the
tangible aspects of convenant life: productivity, peace, population,
presence, and land. The promise includes a pledge to bless
their loyalty to the covenant and to curse
Yahweh, the god of their fathers, the god of their ancestors, promises
his own loyalty to his covenant with his people.
Blessing and Curse
The blessings and curses of Leviticus 26 are quite similar to
those of Deuteronomy 27-28 as well as to those of the Esarhaddon vassal
treaties and the Sefire stelas. The similarities involve both formal
structure and traditional phraseology and vocabulary. By their very
contexts in the biblical materials, the blessings and curses are dis-
tinctly covenantal.1 The blessings are directly related to the promised
1 Contra Clements, Prophecy and Tradition, pp. 16-17.
203
blessings and/or privileges of both the Abrahamic and the Mosaic cove-
nants. Likewise, the curses are directly related to the nullification
or removal of those same blessings and/or privileges.1
The blessings and curses do not in themselves indicate the pres-
ence of the Palestinian Covenant in Leviticus 26.2 Any preview of that
covenant in the pericope must maintain a continuity with the two pre-
vious covenants. In other words, a third covenant (whether here or in
Deuteronomy 27-30) likewise does not nullify the Abrahamic and Mosaic
covenants.
Obedience and Disobedience
"Obedience to Yahweh, the one God, who delivered
slavery and is jealous of his own uniqueness, defines the fundamental
nature of the Old Testament faith."3 Thus, obedience reflects respect
for who and what Yahweh is personally and historically (Lev 26:1-3, 13-
15, 39-45). Obedience involves the acceptance of the lordship of Yahweh
in one's life in time and space (cf. vv. 2, 34-35, 43). Obedience pro-
duces participation in the covenant blessings (v. 9). The precepts
reveal the will of God for
the will of Yahweh in order to be loyal to the covenants (cf. v. 41).
Disobedience is the denial of the identity of Yahweh in history,
covenant, and law. It is the breach of the covenant faith (v. 15). It
is acting unfaithfully, disloyally, treasonously (v. 40). It is blatant
opposition to God (vv. 21, 23, 27). it is nonperformance of his commands
1 See above, pp. 140-41, 165-66.
2 See above, pp. 190-91.
3 Zimmerli, Old Testament Theology, p. 116.
204
(v. 14). It is rejection of his statutes and despising of his ordi-
nances (v. 15). Thus, it is a matter of the inner man (vv. 15, 41,
43; note "soul" and "heart"). Disobedience has frightful consequences.
Even cannibalism is not beyond the capability of the disobedient (v.
29). It causes the unacceptability of the sacrifices which were the
outward manifestation of faith (v. 31). Disobedience is worthy only of
death (vv. 25, 33, 37, 38) and exile (vv. 33, 44). Death would be the
separation from the body; exile would be the separation from the land.
Guilt
Guilt (Nvf) is a concept occurring in verses 39, 40, 41, and 43.
It is mentioned only in the context of repentance, confession, humility,
and restitution. The guilt resulting from disloyalty to the covenant
had to be recognized before the breached covenant could be reinstated.
The guilt was twofold: (1) the guilt of the ancestors of
father," vv. 39, 40) and (2) the guilt of the current generation of
Israelites (vv. 39, 40, 41, 43). Confession of both was required for
restoration. Both references to the twofold guilt place the guilt of
the current generation first. Unless that generation could recognize
and deal with their own guilt, it would be pointless to recognize and
attempt to deal with the guilt of their fathers.
This guilt was so burdensome that it led to severe anguish in
the exiled peoples (v. 39). The guilt was real. The burden was real.
It was not a temporary "guilt trip." The guilt, properly recognized,
was an instrument of God to draw them back to the covenant relationship
which they enjoyed prior to their willful rebellion against Yahweh. The
guilt had to be confessed (v. 40).
205
Retribution and Chastisement
The application of the curses/penalties of verses 14-45 are
highlighted by two factors: (1) the gradation of the punishments in
five stages of severity (vv., 16-17, 18-20, 21-22, 23-26, and 27-38) and
(2) the recurring refrain, "seven times for your sins" (vv. 18, 21, 24,
28). The stages of chastisement are emphasized also by the occurrence
of the term "discipline" (rsy, vv. 18, 23, 28). The entire process,
from start to finish, was intended as a means of restoration. However,
the primary purpose was not restoration, but the glorification of the
covenant god, Yahweh (cf. vv. 44, 45).
Retribution may be terminal (cf. vv. 25, 30, 38), but chastise-
ment may result in restoration through repentance (cf. vv. 39-45). Both
are involved in this pericope. The first is for the unconfessing, but
the second is for the confessing.
The refrain is an echo of both the sabbatical principle ("seven")1
and the covenant context ("sin" xFH). "Sin" is a term found in the vas-
sal treaties of Esarhaddon regarding the breach of covenant. The primary
concern, therefore, of this pericope was regarding the seal/sign of the
Mosaic Covenant, the sabbaths. This also involved the land (vv. 34-35,
43), so that the Abrahamic Covenant was not left entirely out of the
picture. The judgment of Yahweh was not only for the nonobservance of
the sabbaths, but for the worship of idols and the defilement of the
people among whom God dwelt (cf. vv. 1-2, 29-31). The judgments of God
were not detrimental to the covenants (v. 44). Indeed, the judgments
established a proper perspective regarding disobedience, sin. Judgment
1 See above, pp. 98-99.
206
exposed sin for what is really was: rebellion. Judgment also served
to identify the authority behind the covenants: Yahweh. The judgments
would increase to such an intensity and nature that there would be no
doubt that Yahweh had intervened in the daily affairs of the nation.
Exile
Exile ("scattering among the nations," v. 33) was the ultimate
covenant penalty. It meant removal from the land of promise. The land-
edness for which the nation had hoped would dissolve into the landless-
ness which had characterized the sojourn in
they had left in
heart" (v. 41) would be set among those who characterized that idiom in
every aspect of their lives outside the covenants. Exile was a living
death, a living separation from the land of life abundant. Exile meant
removal from the position in which the nation could receive the bless-
ings of the Abrahamic and Mosaic covenants. The exile, however, need
not be terminal. Exile, landlessness, could once again be the condition
of hope (vv. 39-45). Landlessness was not synonymous with divine rejec-
tion or abhorrence (v. 44). As at Sinai, and in the wilderness, land-
lessness presented a goal for life and a meaning for history. The land-
less ones must cast their cares upon the one who would guide them out of
bondage to freedom. Even in the land of their enemies, Yahweh was their
God (v. 44). The covenant relationship knows no geographical or politi-
cal boundaries. The loyalty of Yahweh is unaffected by the landedness
or the landlessness of his people. He is totally above and through the
circumstances of history, working for the repentance of his covenanted
people, so that his covenants might one day be fulfilled completely.
207
Repentance
"Repentance" (bvw) does not occur in Leviticus 26. However,
the concept of repentance is found in a threefold turning of the exiled
people to Yahweh: (1) They would confess their guilt and the guilt of
their fathers (v. 40), recognizing their personal and corporate culpa-
bility. (2) They would humble their "uncircumcised heart" (v. 41),
bringing it into subjection to the precepts of Yahweh. Such subjection
is the covenant loyalty required of a covenanted people. It is submis-
sion to the lordship of Yahweh, the suzerain of the covenants. The
subjection must be internal and real. It cannot be a mere compliance
externally in religious exercises. (3) They would make restitution for
their guilt (v. 41), accepting the federal consequences of sin. Such
restitution is not soteriological redemption. It is the evidence, not
the cause, of repentance and expiation. The impact of sin would be felt
until the land had enjoyed its restitution. Exile would continue after
repentance until the time had been fulfilled. Getting right with God
does not insure immediate blessing and solution of circumstances. It
does guarantee a restoration to the covenant position whereby the bless-
ings might come once the landed position is regained.
Restitution
"Restitution" (hcr) not only involves the full application of
the federal consequences of sin, but also the full application of that
which is right in the covenanted relationship of Yahweh to the land
(vv. 34-35, 43). Restitution, therefore, has a twofold character:
positive (that which is right) and negative (that which is the just
consequence of sin). The lesson of restitution for
inexorable will and way of Yahweh in the covenant within time and space.
208
Revelation
The concept of the law indicates a communication of the covenant
deity with the covenant recipients. Commandments, statutes, ordinances,
and laws/instructions must be conveyed since they cannot be intuitively
perceived. The concept of covenant itself, in the ancient Near East,
demanded a deposit or record of the pact for future generations.
The diversity of covenant concepts and forms in Leviticus 26,
as compared with the ancient near eastern treaties, is an evidence of
the independent theology of
remarkable unwillingness to appreciate the creative possibilities of
26 lies, in part, in its uniqueness at that particular stage of progres-
sive revelation. The confluent nature of the revelation (i.e., the
drawing upon current vocabulary, style, forms, and cultural milieu)
represents a desire on the part of Yahweh for the revelation to be
immediately understandable and applicable.
Leviticus 26 claims to be Mosaic in time, content, and composi-
tion. The self-witness of scripture must suffice as the prima facie
evidence. Unless equally ancient and authentic documentation can be
produced to explicitly deny the claims and contents of this pericope,
it must be allowed to stand. This must be true of both the historical
claims and the theological concepts. The treaties of Esarhaddon and
Sefire cannot be offered as contradictory testimony since they were
composed 700 years too late and their diversities of subject matter,
purpose, and structure disqualify them as legal testimony against the
biblical materials of Leviticus 26.
1 Clements, Prophecy and Tradition, p. 21.
209
Leviticus 26 and the New Testament
The employment of verses 11-12 in 2 Corinthians 6:16 is the
only concrete example of the influence of Leviticus 26 on the revelation
of the New Testament.1 The passage from this pericope was employed in
order that Paul might better emphasize the concept of identification
with God. It is unfortunate that Wenham did not deal with this New
Testament employment of Leviticus 26:11-12 at all in his commentary.2
Wenham, however, does observe that the blessings and curses of Leviti-
cus 26 are expressed (at least in principle) by the teachings of Christ
in his ministry prior to the cross. The chastisement of
of covenant disloyalty was a reality among the Jews of Christ's day.
Jesus also spoke of the eschatological reality of that chastisement
in the future days. "Many of the horrifying judgments described in
Rev. 6ff. find their original setting in the covenant curses of Lev. 26
and Deut. 28,"3 Wenham claims. This is true insofar as they are directly
related by Revelation to the nation of
covenant blessings and curses to the Gentiles is unwarranted. The cove-
nants were made only with Israel.4
The principles of God's dealings with the New Testament belie-
vers by means of reward and/or chastisement are basically the same as
the principles by which he dealt with
must not be construed, however, as meaning that the New Testament saints
1 See above, pp. 74-76.
2 Wenham, Leviticus, pp. 329-30, 333-34.
3 Ibid., p. 334.
4 See above, p. 168.
210
are under the same covenant relationship as
is due to the same God, not to the same covenant. The very nature of
God demands the federal consequences of sin in the lives of his people
in all ages (cf. Gal 6:7-10; 1 Cor 11:30). The same God provides les-
sons for believers in all ages based upon his historical deeds (cf. Rom
15:4; 1 Cor 10:11-13). The same God blesses in tangible ways those
who are faithful (cf. 2 Cor 9:6-15). The same God is loyal even in the
face of the disloyalty of his people (cf. 2 Tim 2:11-13; Phil 1:6).
The same God is Lord (cf. 1 Cor 12:3). The same Lord requires confes-
sion, humility, and restitution (cf. 1 John 1:9; 1 Pet 5:5-7; Phlm
1-25). The same God promises that obedient service will be rewarded
(cf. 1 Cor 15:58). The same God demonstrates that the believer has
been delivered from bondage into a servitude that is totally unlike the
bondage of fear and curse (cf. Rom 6:12-23; Heb 2:14-15; Acts 26:18;
26) the continued authority and perpetuity of the Abrahamic Covenant
after the ratification of the Mosaic Covenant also confirmed that testi-
mony in Galatians 3:17. The New Testament believer must also learn that
the authority of one covenant does not annul the authority of the pre-
vious. Any exceptions are clearly revealed by God (e.g., Heb 7:11-14).
The epistle to the Galatian churches teaches that the requirement of
faith in Abraham was not replaced by law under Moses. Therefore, faith
is still binding upon any man's relationship to the God of Abraham.
CHAPTER VI
CONCLUSION
What then is the conclusion concerning the relationship of the
Palestinian Covenant to Leviticus 26? The following relationships may
be specified:
(1) Leviticus 26 does not specify or identify the Palestinian Cove-
nant.
(2) Leviticus 26 does have similarities to the Palestinian Covenant
as found in Deuteronomy 27-30.
(3) Leviticus 26 explains the relationship of
prior to occupation and subsequent to the revelation of the
Mosaic Covenant.
(4) Leviticus 26 does not claim to be prophetic. The provisions of
the pericope reveal, however, that which could be understood as
prophetic. The exile and subsequent repentance regarding the
Mosaic Covenant made with their "ancestors" (v. 45) may be taken
as prophetic.1
(5) Leviticus 26 emphasizes the Mosaic and Abrahamic covenants by
direct reference as well as by terminology and concept. The
relationship to these two covenants is so imbedded in the text
that any connotation of the Palestinian Covenant must also
involve a similar relationship between it and the previous two.
1 See above, pp. 3, 55, 112, 167-68.
211
212
(6) The affinities between Leviticus 26 and Deuteronomy 27-30 are
far more intimate than any similarities between these two peri-
copes and the extrabiblical treaties. The common entities (sub-
ject matter, language, historical context, author, and intent)
of the two pericopes tie them together. These affinities are
the essence of the preview of the Palestinian Covenant in Levi-
ticus 26.1 Leviticus 26 is transitional revelation for the
nation of
Sinai and the Palestinian Covenant granted on the plains of
Covenant itself. It embodies only the concepts necessary to
prepare the nation for entrance into that covenant at a later
date.
The text of Leviticus 26 is stable enough to warrant the conclu-
sion that none of these factors would be influenced by any textual dif-
ficulties.
The pericope, viewed in the context of the Sinai revelation and
the Sinai apostasies, offers a perspective not found elsewhere in the
scriptures. That perspectives regards the theological instruction of
the nation of
Unlike Exodus 20 and Deuteronomy 4, Leviticus 26 is not a mini-statement
of the Mosaic Covenant. It is, instead, a compilation and synthesis of
the combined truths of both the Abrahamic and Mosaic covenants. The
synthesis presents
ments from the Lord Yahweh. It provided
promise tempered by the touch of precept. Leviticus 26 produced for
1 See above, p. 4.
213
sabbatical principle. Leviticus 26 is a theological treatise with
life implications. It is a parenesis. It wrapped up the Sinai experi-
ence by appealing to a continuity of authority and promise. Many fell
in the wilderness because they failed to heed this parenesis. Because
ings for New Testament believers struggling with apparent conflict
between the Mosaic and Abrahamic covenants (Gal 3:17).
Two areas of covenant were not discussed in this study since
they were not explicit in Leviticus 26: (1) the relationship of cove-
nant to kingdom and (2) the relationship of kingdom and covenant to the
calendar of
The writer believes that both areas are necessary adjuncts to the theo-
logical core of Leviticus 26 if one is to understand properly the rela-
tionship of the prophets to Leviticus 26 (and, to Deuteronomy 27-30).
The New Year and Enthronement concepts so often presented by nonevangeli-
cal writers have been cast aside too often without full and fair con-
sideration. The applications may not be consistent with the biblical
data, but the data presented by those writers does have a foundation in
biblical distinctives. The data must be gleaned and placed in its
proper context in order that it might take its rightful place in evangel-
ical Old Testament theology. Leviticus 26 is explicit concerning the
lordship of Yahweh in both time and space. The sabbatical principle
should be examined from the interior of the annual calendar of
(viz., the seventh month). That examination belongs more properly to
an exegesis of Leviticus 23.
BIBLIOGRAPHY
Ackroyd, Peter R. Exile and Restoration: A Study of Hebrew Thought of
the Sixth Century B.C. OTL.
1968.
_______.
versity Press, 1970.
Albrektson, Bertil. "Reflections on the Emergence of a Standard Text
of the Hebrew Bible." In vol. 29 of Supplements to Vetus Testa-
mentum. Edited by J. A. Emerton, et al.
1978.
al-katibu al-muqaddasu ("The Holy Writ-
ings"/Arabic Bible).
Andreasen, Niels-Erik. "Festival and Freedom: A Study of an Old Testa-
ment Theme." Interpretation 28 (1974):281-97.
________. The Old Testament Sabbath: A Tradition-Historical Investiga-
tion. Society of Biblical Literature Dissertation Series, 7.
Archer, Gleason L., Jr. A Survey of Old Testament Introduction. Revised
edition.
Baird, J. Arthur and Freedman, David Noel, editors. The Computer Bible.
1971-.
Baltzer, Klaus. The Covenant Formulary. Translated by David E. Green.
Bamberger, Bernard J. Leviticus. Vol. 3 of The Torah A Modern Com-
mentary. 5 vols.
gations, 1979.
Barclay, R. A. The Law Givers: Leviticus and Deuteronomy. Vol. 3 of
Bible Guides. Edited by William Barclay and F. F. Bruce. New
Barnes, G. L. A New Approach to the Problem of the Hebrew Tenses and
Its Solution without Recourse to Waw-Consecutive.
J. Thornton and Son, 1965.
215
216
Barr, James. Comparative Philology and the Text of the Old Testament.
________. Review of Biblia Hebraica Stuttgartensia. Journal of Theo-
logical Studies 30 (1979):212-16.
_________. The Semantics of Biblical Language.
sity Press, 1961.
________. "Semitic Philology and the Interpretation of the Old Testa-
ment." In Tradition and Interpretation: Essays by Members of
the Society for Old Testament Study. Edited by G. W. Anderson.
Barrick, W. Boyd. "The Funerary Character of 'High-Places' in Ancient
95.
Barrick, William D. "Amos and the Palestinian Covenant." Unpublished
research paper. Grace Theological Seminary, 1976.
________. "The Basic Hebrew Verb Forms."
(Mimeographed.)
_______. "The Imprecatory Psalms and the Palestinian Covenant." Unpub-
lished postgraduate seminar paper. Grace Theological Seminary,
1978.
_______. "An Introductory Study of Old Testament Textual Criticism and
Its Application to Selected Text-Critical Problems in the 'Song
of Moses."' Unpublished research paper. Grace Theological
Seminary, 1978.
_______. "Old Testament Textual Criticism: Its Current Trends and
Tensions." Unpublished research paper. Grace Theological
Seminary, 1980.
Barthelemy, Dominique, et al. Preliminary and Interim Report on the
Hebrew Old Testament Text Project. 3 vols.
Bible Societies, 1973-77.
Battenfield, James R. "Hebrew Stylistic Development in Archaic Poetry:
A Text-Critical and Exegetical Study of the Blessing of Jacob,
Genesis 49:1-27." Unpublished doctor of theology dissertation.
Grace Theological Seminary, 1976.
Bauer, Walter; Arndt, William F.; and Gingrich, F. Wilbur. A Greek-
English Lexicon of the New Testament and Other Early Christian
Literature. 2nd edition, revised and augmented by F. Wilbur
Gingrich and Frederick W. Danker.
217
Bess, Stephen Herbert. "Systems of Land Tenure in Ancient
Unpublished doctor of philosophy dissertation. University of
Blake, Frank R. A Resurvey of Hebrew Tenses with an Appendix: Hebrew
Influence on Biblical Aramaic. Roma: Pontificium Institutum
Biblicum, 1951.
Blank, Sheldon H. "The Curse, the Blasphemy, the Spell, the Oath."
Blass, F. and Debrunner, A. A Greek Grammar of the New Testament and
Other Early Christian Literature. Translated and revised by
Robert W. Funk.
forschung.
________. "Die Inschriften Asarhaddons (AfO Beiheft 9). Nachtrage und
Verbesserungen." Archiv fur Orientforschung 18 (1957-58):113-
18.
Botterweck, G. Johannes and Ringgren, Helmer, editors. Theological
Dictionary of the Old Testament. Translated by John T. Willis,
et al.
(See below, Theological Dictionary of the Old Testament.)
Braulik, Georg. "Die Ausdriicke fur 'Gesetz' im Buch Deuteronomium."
Biblica 51 (1970):39-66.
Brichto, Herbert Chanan. The Problem of "Curse" in the Hebrew Bible.
Journal of Biblical Literature Monograph Series, 13. Philadel-
phia: Society of Biblical Literature, 1963.
Brooke, Alan England, and McLean, Norman, editors. The Old Testament in
Greek According to the Text of Codex Vaticanus, Supplemented from
Other Uncial Manuscripts.
Brown, Francis; Driver, S. R.; and Briggs, C. A.; editors. A Hebrew
and English Lexicon of the Old Testament. Reprint.
Clarendon Press, 1968.
Brueggemann, Walter. The Land: Place as Gift, Promise, and Challenge
in Biblical Faith. Overtures to Biblical Theology. Edited by
Walter Brueggemann and John R. Donahue.
Press, 1977.
_______. "Weariness, Exile and Chaos (A Motif in Royal Theology)."
Catholic Biblical Quarterly 34 (1972):19-38.
Brull, Adolf, editor. Das samaritanische Targum zum Pentateuch. 7 vols.
in 1. Reprint..
218
Childs, Brevard S. Introduction to the Old Testament As Scripture.
Civil, Miguel, et al., editors. The Assyrian Dictionary of the Oriental
Institute of the
Institute, 1956-.
Clements, Ronald E. God's
of the Book of Deuteronomy.
1969.
________. Prophecy and Tradition. Growing Points in Theology.
Cohen, David. Dictionnaire des
langues semitiques. Comprenant un fichier comparatif de Jean
Cantineau.
Comrie, Bernard. Aspect: An Introduction to the Study of Verbal Aspect
and Related Problems.
Edited by W. Sidney Allen, et al.
sity Press, 1976.
Craigie, Peter C. The Book of Deuteronomy. NICOT. Edited by R. K.
1976.
Dahood, Mitchell. The Psalms. 3 vols. AB. Edited by William Foxwell
Albright and David Noel Freedman. Garden City: Doubleday & Co.,
Inc., 1966-70.
Davidson, A. B. Introductory Hebrew Grammar: Hebrew Syntax. 3rd edi-
tion.
________. The Theology of the Old Testament. Edited by S. D. F. Sal-
mond. The International Theological Library. Edited by Charles
A. Briggs and Stewart D. F. Salmond. Reprint.
T. Clark, 1961.
Delitzsch, Franz. Biblical Commentary on the Prophecies of Isaiah.
2 vols. Translated by James Martin. In Biblical Commentary on
the Old Testament. Reprint.
Publishing Company, 1967.
Dentan, Robert C. Review of The Land: Place as Gift, Promise and Chal-
lenge in Biblical Faith, by Walter Brueggemann. Journal of Bib-
lical Literature 97 (1978):577-78.
Donner, H. and Rollig, W. Kanaanaische and aramaische Inschriften.
3 vols.
219
Driver, G. R. Review of Proverbs and Northwest Semitic Philology, by
M. Dahood. Journal of Semitic Studies 10 (1965):112-17.
Driver, S. R. A Critical and Exegetical Commentary on Deuteronomy.
ICC. Edited by Samuel Rolles Driver, et al. 3rd edition.
Reprint.
________. An Introduction to the Literature of the Old Testament.
Meridian Library.
________. A Treatise on. the Use of the Tenses in Hebrew and Some Other
Syntactical Questions. 3rd edition, revised.
don Press, 1969.
Ehrlich,
Literal Meaning. 3 vols. The Library of Biblical Studies.
Edited by Harry M. Orlinsky.
Inc., 1969.
Eichrodt, Walther. Theology of the Old Testament. 2 vols. Translated
by J. A. Baker. OTL. Edited by G. Ernest Wright, et al.
Eissfeldt, Otto. The Old Testament: An Introduction. Translated by
Peter R. Ackroyd.
Elliger, Karl. Leviticus. Handbuch zum Alten Testament, 1/4.
and Rudolph, W., editors. Biblia Hebraica Stuttgartensia.
Revised edition.
Elliott-Binns, L. E. "Some problems of the holiness code." Zeitschrift
fur die alttestamentliche Wissenschaft 67 (1955):26-40.
Encyclopaedia Judaica. S.v. "Leviticus, Book of," by Jacob Milgrom.
Feinberg, Charles Lee. The Prophecy of Ezekiel: The Glory of the Lord.
Fensham, F. C. "Maledictions and Benedictions in Ancient Near-Eastern
Vassal-Treaties and the Old Testament." Zeitschrift fiir die
alttestamentliche Wissenschaft 74 (1962):1-9.
_______. "The Use of the Suffix Conjugation and the Prefix Conjugation
in a Few Old Hebrew Poems." Journal of Northwest Semitic Lan-
guages 6 (1978):9-18.
Field, Fridericus, editor. Origenis Hexaplorum quae supersunt sive
Veterum Interpretum Graecorum in Totum Vetus Testamentum. 2 vols.
Oxonii:
220
Fischer, Bonifatio; Gribomont, Johanne; and
tors. Biblia Sacra Iuxta Vulgatam Versionem. Revised by
Robertus Weber. 2 vols.
anstalt, 1969.
Fishbane, Michael. Review of A Theology of Exile: Judgment/Deliverance
in Jeremiah and Ezekiel, by Thomas M. Raitt. Journal of the
American Oriental Society 99 (1979):383-85.
Fitzmyer, Joseph A. The Aramaic Inscriptions of Sefire. Biblica et
Orientalia, 19.
_______. "The Aramaic Suzerainty Treaty from Sefire in the Museum of
_______. "A Further Note on the Aramaic Inscription of Sefire III.
22." Journal of Semitic Studies 14 (1969):197-200.
Frankena, R. "The Vassal-Treaties of Esarhaddon and the Dating of
Deuteronomy." Oudtestamentische Studien 14 (1965):122-54.
Freedman, David Noel. Pottery, Poetry, and Prophecy: Studies in Early
Hebrew Poetry.
________. "Prolegomenon." In The Forms of Hebrew Poetry. George
Buchanan Gray. The Library of Biblical Studies. Edited by
Harry M. Orlinsky. Reprint.
1972.
________. "Variant
11." Catholic Biblical Quarterly 36 (1974):525-34.
Freedman, H. and Simon, Maurice, editors. Midrash Rabba. Vol. 4: Levi-
ticus. Translated by
1961.
Freeman, Hobart E. An Introduction to the Old Testament Prophets.
Gall, August Freiherrn von, editor. Der hebraische Pentateuch der
Samaritaner. Reprint.
Gaster, Theodor H. The
tion. Garden City: Anchor Books, 1964.
Gerstenberger, Erhard. "Covenant and Commandment." Journal of Biblical
Literature 84 (:L965):38-51.
Gibson, John C. L. Textbook of Syrian Semitic Inscriptions. 2 vols.
Gordis, Robert. The Biblical Text in the Making: A Study of the Kethib-
Qere.
221
Gordon, Cyrus H. Ugaritic Textbook. Analecta Orientalia, 38. Reedi-
tio photomechanica. Roma: Pontificium Institutum Biblicum,
1965.
Gordon, R. P. "Deuteronomy and the Deuteronomic School." Review of
Deuteronomy and the Deuteronomic School, by Moshe Weinfeld.
Tyndale Bulletin 25 (1974):113-20.
Goshen-Gottstein, M. H. "The History of the Bible-Text and Comparative
Semitics--A Methodological Problem." Vetus Testamentum 7 (1957):
195-201.
Gove, Philip Babcock, editor. Webster's Third New International Dic-
tionary of the English Language Unabridged.
G. & C. Merriam Co., Publishers, 1976.
Gray, George Buchanan. A Critical and Exegetical Commentary on Numbers.
ICC. Ed. by Samuel Rolles Driver, et al. Reprint.
T. & T. Clark Ltd., 1976.
Acta Oriental is 29 (1965):1-18.
________. "Three Notes on the Sefire Inscriptions." Journal of Semitic
Studies 11 (1966):98-105.
Grelot, Pierre. Review of The Aramaic Inscriptions of Sefire, by Joseph
A. Fitzmyer. Revue Biblique 75 (1968):280-86.
Inquiry into the Character of Cult Phenomena and the Historical
Setting of the Priestly School.
1978.
Harrison, R. K. Old Testament Times.
mans Publishing Company, 1970.
Hatch, Edwin, and Redpath, Harry A., editors. A Concordance to the
Septuagint. 3 vols. in 2. Reprint.
u. Verlagsanstalt, 1975.
Hillers, Delbert R. Covenant: The History of a Biblical Idea. Balti-
more: The Johns Hopkins University Press, 1969.
________. Treaty-Curses and the Old Testament Prophets. Biblica et
Orientalia, 16.
Huesman, John. "The Infinitive Absolute and the Waw + Perfect Problem."
Biblica 37 (1956):410-34.
Huffmon, Herbert B. "The Covenant Lawsuit in the Prophets." Journal
of Biblical Literature 78 (1959):285-95.
222
Hughes, James A. "Another Look at the Hebrew Tenses." Journal of Near
Eastern Studies 29 (1970):12-24.
dxm tvlvdg tvytvxb hrvt ywmvH hwmH llvk wmvH.
Hebrew Publishing Company, n.d.
Interpreter's Dictionary of the Bible. S.v. "Text, OT," by B. J.
Roberts.
Jastrow, Marcus, compiler. A Dictionary of the Targumim, the Talmud
Babli and Yerushalmi, and the Midrashic Literature. 2 vols.
Reprint.
Jellicoe,
Eisenbrauns, 1978.
Jenni, Ernst, and Westermann, Claus, editors. Theologisches Handworter-
buch zum Alten Testament. 2 vols. Munchen: Chr. Kaiser Verlag,
1971, 1976. (See below, Theologisches Handworterbuch zum Alten
Testament.)
Jeremias, Jarg. Kultprophetie and GerichtsverkUndigung in der spaten
Konigszeit
and Neuen Testament, 35. Neukirchen-Vluyn: Neukirchener Ver-
lag, 1970.
Jouon, Paul. Grammaire de 1'Hebreu Biblique.
Pontifical, 1965.
________. "Notes Philologiques sur le Texte Hebreu." Biblica 9 (1928):
4-46.
Kautzsch, E. and Cowley, A. E., editors. Gesenius' Hebrew Grammar.
2nd English edition. Reprint.
Keil, Carl Friedrich. Biblical Commentary on the Prophecies of Ezekiel.
2 vols. Translated by James Martin. In Biblical Commentary on
the Old Testament. Reprint.
Publishing Company, 1968.
________. The Books of the Chronicles. Translated by Andrew Harper.
In Biblical Commentary on the Old Testament. Reprint. Grand
Rapids: Wm. B. Eerdmans Publishing Company, 1968.
_________. The Prophecies of Jeremiah. 2 vols. Translated by James
Kennedy. In Biblical Commentary on the Old Testament. Grand
Rapids: William B. Eerdmans Publishing Company, 1968.
_________. The Twelve Minor Prophets. 2 vols. Translated by James
Martin. In Biblical Commentary on the Old Testament. Grand
Rapids: Wm. B. Eerdmans Publishing Company, 1969.
223
________ and Delitzsch, F. The Pentateuch. 3 vols. Translated by
James Martin. In Biblical Commentary on the Old Testament.
Reprint.
1971.
Kirkpatrick, A. F. The Book of Psalms.
1902.
Kittel, Gerhard and Friedrich, Gerhard, editors. Theological Dictionary
of the New Testament. Translated and edited by Geoffrey W.
Bromiley. 9 vols.
Company, 1964-74. (See below, Theological Dictionary of the
New Testament.)
Kittel, Rud., editor. Biblia Hebraica. 3rd edition. Reprint. Stutt-
gart: Wurttembergische Bibelanstalt, 1966.
Klein, Ralph W. Israel in Exile: A Theological Interpretation. Phila-
delphia: Fortress Press, 1979.
Kline, Meredith G. By Oath Consigned: A Reinterpretation of the Cove-
nant Signs of Circumcision and Baptism.
B. Eerdmans Publishing Company, 1968.
_________. Treaty of the Great King: The Covenant Structure of Deuter-
onomy: Studies and Commentary.
Publishing Co.., 1972.
Koehler, Ludwig and Baumgartner, Walter, editors. Hebraisches and ara-
maisches Lexikon zum Alten Testament. Revised by Walter Baum-
gartner, et al. Edited by B. Hartmann, et al. 3rd edition.
________. Lexicon in Veteris Testamentum Libros. 2nd edition with
supplement.
Kuhn, Karl Georg, editor. Konkordanz zu den Qumrantexten.
Vandenhoeck & Ruprecht, 1960.
Le Deaut, R. "Une Citation de Levitique 26, 45 dans le Document de
Damas I, 4; VI, 2." Revue de Qumran 6 (1967):289-91.
Lee, Samuel, editor. ktb' qdys' ("Holy Writ-
ings"/Syriac Bible: Peshito Version). [
Foreign Bible Society, ca. 1823.
Liddell, Henry George and Scott, Robert, compilers. A Greek-English
Lexicon. Revised and augmented throughout by Henry Stuart
Jones with the assistance of Roderick McKenzie, et al., with a
supplement. Reprint.
Lisowsky, Gerhard. Konkordanz zum hebraischen Alten Testament. 2nd
edition.
224
Livingston, G. Herbert. The Pentateuch in Its Cultural Environment.
Lohfink, Norbert. "Die Abanderung der Theologie des priesterlichen
Geschichtswerks im Segen des Heiligkeitsgesetzes: zu Lev.
26,9.11-13." in Wort and Geschichte: Festschrift fur Karl
Elliger zum 70. Geburtstag. Edited by Hartmut Gese and Hans
Peter Ruger. Alter Orient and Altes Testament, 18. Neukirchen-
Vluyn: Neukirchener Verlag, 1973.
Lohse, Eduard, editor. Die Texte aus
Munchen: K6sel-Verlag, 1971.
Longenecker, Richard N. Biblical Exegesis in the Apostolic Period.
McCarthy, Dennis J. "
and Covenant2." Biblica 60 (1979):247-53.
________. Old Testament Covenant: A Survey of Current Opinions. Rich-
mond, VA: John Knox Press, 1972.
________. Treaty and Covenant: A Study in Form in the Ancient Oriental
Documents and in the Old Testament. Analecta Biblica, 21A.
2nd edition, :revised.
MacDonald, John. "The Particle tx in Classical Hebrew: Some New Data
on Its Use with the Nominative." Vetus Testamentum 14 (1964):
264-75.
McEvenue, Sean E. The Narrative Style of the Priestly Writer. Analecta
Biblica, 50
Macho, Alejandro Diez. Neophyti I: Targum Palestinense MS de la Bib-
lioteca Vaticana. 5 vols.
tigaciones Cientificas, 1971.
Moran, William L. "The Hebrew Language in its Northwest Semitic Back-
ground." In The Bible and the Ancient Near East. Edited by
G. Ernest Wright. Reprint.
Morris, Peter M. K., and James, Edward. A Critical Word Book of Levi-
ticus, Numbers, Deuteronomy. Vol. 8 of The Computer Bible.
Edited by J. Arthur Baird and David Noel Freedman.
MT: Scholars Press and Biblical Research Associates, Inc., 1975.
tvlvdg tvxrqm (Rabbinic Bible). 10 vols.
House, Inc., 1951.
Murphy, James G. A Critical and Exegetical Commentary on the Book of
Leviticus with a New Translation. Reprint.
Publications, 1976.
225
Neiman, David. "PGR: A Canaanite Cult-Object in the Old Testament."
Journal of Biblical Literature 67 (1948):55-60.
Newsome, James D., Jr. By the Waters of
the History and Theology of the Exile.
Press, 1979.
Nicholas, Thomas A. "The Current Quest for the Meaning of the Text of
the Old Testament."
118-36.
North, Robert. Sociology of the Biblical Jubilee. Analecta Biblica, 4.
Paul, Shalom M. Studies in the Book of the Covenant in the Light of
Cuneiform and Biblical Law. Vol. 18 of Supplements to Vetus
Testamentum.
_________. and Dever, William, editors. Biblical Archaeology. Library
of Jewish Knowledge. Edited by Geoffrey Wigoder.
Keter Publishing House Jerusalem Ltd., 1973.
Payne, J. Barton. Encyclopedia of Biblical Prophecy.
per & Row, Publishers, 1973.
The Pentateuch: Codex Hillel. 2 vols.
Ltd., 1974.
Pentateuch, Prophets and Hagiographa: Codex
The Peshitta Institute of the
Testament in Syriac According to the Peshiita Version.
E. J. Brill, 1966-.
Petermann, H., editor. Pentateuchus Samaritanus. Berolini:
1872-91.
Porter, J. R. Leviticus. CBC. Edited by P. R. Ackroyd, et al. Lon-
don:
Rad, Gerhard von. Old Testament Theology. 2 vols. Translated by
D. M. G. Stalker.
1965.
Rahlfs, Alfred, editor. Septuaginta, Id est Vetus Testamentum graece
iuxta LXX interpretes. 9th edition. Reprint. 2 vols. Stutt-
gart: Wurttembergische Bibelanstalt, 1971.
Raitt, Thomas M. A Theology of Exile: Judgment/Deliverance in Jere-
miah and Ezekiel.
226
Ramban (Nachmanides) Commentary on the Torah. Vol. 3: Leviticus.
Translated by Charles B. Chavel.
House, Inc., 1974.
Reider, Joseph. An Index to
of Supplements to Vetus Testamentum. Edited by G. W. Anderson,
et al.
Reif, Stefan C. Review of Deuteronomy and the Deuteronomic School, by
Moshe Weinfeld. Jewish Quarterly Review 63 (1973):272-76.
Reventlow, Henning Graf. "Die Volker als Jahwes Zeugen bei Ezechiel."
Zeitschrift fur die alttestamentliche Wissenschaft 71 (1959):
33-43.
________. Wachter uber
zur Zeitschrift fur die alttestamentliche Wissenschaft, 82.
Rosen, H. B. "The Comparative Assignment of Certain Hebrew Tense Forms."
In Proceedings of the International Conference on Semitic Studies
held in
Academy of Sciences and Humanities, 1969.
Rosenthal, Franz. "Notes on the Third Aramaic Inscription from Sefire--
Sujin." Bulletin of the American Schools of Oriental Research
158 (1960) :28-31.
Ryrie, Charles Caldwell. The Basis of the Premillennial Faith.
NJ: Loizeaux Brothers, 1953.
Sadaqa, Avraham and Sadaqa, Ratson, editors. Jewish and Samaritan Ver-
sion of the Pentateuch.
Saggs, H. W. F. Review of Treaty and Covenant, by Dennis J. McCarthy.
Journal of Theological Studies n.s. 30 (1979):518-21.
Sanders, James A. "Text and Canon: Concepts and Method." Journal of
Biblical Literature 98 (1979):5-29.
Saydon, P. P. "Assonance in Hebrew as a Means of Expressing Emphasis."
Biblica 36 (1955):36-50.
_________. "Meanings and Uses of the Particle tx." Vetus Testamentum
14 (1964):192,-210.
Schrader, Stephen R. "Hesed in the Ancient Near Eastern Milieu." Unpub-
lished master of theology thesis. Grace Theological Seminary,
1974.
Segal, M. H. The Pentateuch: Its Composition and Its Authorship and
Other Biblical Studies.
227
Seilhamer, Frank H. "The Role of Covenant in the
of Amos." In A Light Unto My Path: Old Testament Studies in
Honor of Jacob M. Myers. Edited by Howard N. Bream, et al.
versity Press, 1974.
Sheehan, J. F. X. "Egypto-Semitic Elucidation of the Waw Conversive."
Biblica 52 (1971):39-43.
Smith, J. Payne, editor. A Compendious Syriac Dictionary. Reprint.
Snaith, Norman H. The Jewish New Year Festival: Its Origin and Develop-
ment.
Soden, Wolfram von. Grundriss der akkadischen Grammatik/Erganzungsheft
zum Grundriss der akkadischen Grammatik. Analecta Orientalia,
33/47. 2nd edition, revised. Roma: Pontificium Institutum
Biblicum, 1969.
Soulen, Richard N. Handbook of Biblical Criticism.
Press, 1976.
Sperber, Alexander, editor. The Bible in Aramaic. 5 vols.
E. J. Brill, 1959-73.
Tal, A. "The Samaritan Targum to the Pentateuch, Its Distinctive Char-
acteristics and Its Metamorphosis." Journal of Semitic Studies
21 (1976):26-38.
Theological Dictionary of the New Testament. S.v. "diw<kw," by Albrecht
Oepke.
________. S.v. "dou?loj," by Karl Heinrich Rengstorf.
________. S.v. "paideu<w," by Georg Bertram.
Theological Dictionary of the Old Testament. S.v. “lylix<” by Horst
Dietrich Preuss.
________. S.V. "lhb," by Benedikt Otzen.
________. S.v. "hmABA;" by K.-D. Schunck.
________. S.v. by “tyriB;,”M. Weinfeld.
________. S.V. "hxAGA," by Diether Kellermann.
________. S.v. “MyliUl.Gi,”by H. D. Preuss.
Theologisches Handworterbuch zum Alten Testament. S.v. "jlh," by G.
Sauer.
________. S.v. “Hvn,”by F. Stolz.
228
________. S.v. “NOfA,” by R. Knierim.
________. S.v. “dqp,” by W. Schotroff.
________. S.v. "hcr," by G. Gerleman.
________. S.v. “Mlw," by G. Gerleman.
________. S.v. "fmw," by H. Schult.
Thiel, Winfried. "HEFER BERIT. Zum Bundbrechen im Alten Testament."
Vetus Testamentum 20 (1970):214-29.
Thompson, J. A. The Book of Jeremiah. NICOT. Edited by R. K. Harrison.
Tov, Emanuel. "Some Corrections to Reider-Turner's Index to
Textus 8 (1973):164-74.
________. "The Use of Concordances in the Reconstruction of the Vorlage
of the LXX." Catholic Biblical Quarterly 40 (1978):29-36.
Tsevat, Matitiahu. "The Basic Meaning of the Biblical Sabbath." Zeit-
schrift fur die alttestamentliche Wissenschaft 84 (1972):447-59.
Van Seters, John. "Confessional Reformulation in the Exilic Period."
Vetus Testamentum 22 (1972):448-59.
Vaux, Roland de. Ancient
Vermes, G. The
Penguin Books Inc., 1975.
Vogt, Ernestus, editor. Lexicon Linguae Aramaicae Veteris Testamenti
documentis antiquis illustratum. Roma: Pontificium Institutum
Biblicum, 1971.
Voobus, Arthur. The Pentateuch in the Version of the Syro-Hexapla:
fac-simile Edition of a Midyat MS. discovered 1964. Corpus
Scriptorum Christianorum Orientalium, Vol. 369.
Secretariat du CorpusSCO, 1975.
Waard, J. de. A Comparative Study of the Old Testament Text in the Dead
Sea Scrolls and in the New Testament. Vol. 4 in Studies on the
Texts of the
Rapids: Wm. B. Eerdmans, 1966.
Waldow, Hans Eberhard von. "
siderations." In A Light Unto My Path: Old Testament Studies
in Honor of Jacob M. Myers. Edited by Howard N. Bream, et al.
versity Press, 1974.
229
Walton, Brian. Biblia Sacra Polyglotta. 6 vols. Reprint.
Akademische Druck- u. Verlagsanstalt, 1963.
Watts, J. Wash. A Survey of Syntax in the Hebrew Old Testament. Grand
Rapids: William B. Eerdmans Publishing Co., 1964.
Wehr, Hans, compiler. A Dictionary of Modern Written Arabic. Edited
by J. Milton Cowan. 3rd edition.
Service, Inc., 1971.
Weil, Gerard E., editor. Massorah Gedolah Manuscrit B. 19a de Leningrad.
Vol. 1: Les Listes.
Weinfeld, Moshe. Deuteronomy and the Deuteronomic School.
Clarendon Press, 1972.
Weingreen, J. A Practical Grammar for Classical Hebrew. Reprint.
Wenham, Gordon J. The Book of Leviticus. NICOT. Edited by R. K.-Har-
rison.
Wevers, John Wm. "Text History and Text Criticism of the Septuagint."
In vol. 29 of Supplements to Vetus Testamentum. Edited by J. A.
Emerton, et al.
Whiston, William, translator. Josephus: Complete Works. Reprint.
Whitcomb, John C., Jr. Solomon to the Exile: Studies in Kings and
Chronicles.
Wijngaards, J. N. M. The Dramatization of Salvific History in the
Deuteronomic Schools. Oudtestamentische Studien, 16.
E. J. Brill, 1969.
Williams, Ronald J. Hebrew Syntax: An outline. 2nd edition.
Wilson, Robert Dick. A Scientific Investigation of the Old Testament.
Revised by Edward J. Young.
Wiseman, D. J. The Vassal-Treaties of Esarhaddon.
Wolff, Hans Walter. Hosea. Translated by Gary Stansell. Edited by
Paul D. Hanson. In Hermeneia. Edited by Frank Moore Cross, Jr.,
et al.
________. Joel and Amos. Translated by Waldemar Janzen, et al. Edited
by S. Dean McBride, Jr. In Hermeneia. Edited by Frank Moore
Cross, Jr., et al.
230
Wurthwein, Ernst. Der Text des Alten Testaments: Eine Einfuhrung in
die Biblia Hebraica. 4th edition, revised.
tembergische Bibelanstalt, 1973.
Yahuda, A. S. The Language of the Pentateuch in Its Relation to Egyptian.
Vol. 1.
Young, Edward J. The Book of Isaiah. 3 vols.
B. Eerdmans Publishing Company, 1965-72.
________. My Servants the Prophets.
Publishing Co.., 1952.
Young, G. Douglas. Concordance of Ugaritic. Analecta Orientalia, 36.
Roma: Pontificium Institutum Biblicum, 1956.
________. "The Origin of the Waw Conversive." Journal of Near Eastern
Studies 12 (1953):248-52.
Zimmerli, Walther. Ezekiel 1: A Commentary on the Book of the Prophet
Ezekiel, Chapters 1-24. Translated by Ronald E. Clements.
Edited by Frank Moore Cross, et al. In Hermeneia.
Fortress Press, 1979.
________. Old Testament Theology in Outline. Translated by David E.
Green.
________. "Sinaibund and Abrahambund (Ein Beitrag zum Verstandnis der
Priesterschrift)." Theologische Zeitschrift 16 (1960):266-88.